Selected quad for the lemma: word_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
word_n body_n bread_n sacramental_a 3,200 5 12.1852 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A15082 A replie to Iesuit Fishers answere to certain questions propou[n]ded by his most gratious Matie: King Iames By Francis White D: of DivĀ· deane of Carlile, chaplaine to his Matie. Hereunto is annexed, a conference of the right: R:B: of St Dauids wth the same Iesuit* White, Francis, 1564?-1638.; Laud, William, 1573-1645.; Baylie, Richard, b. 1585 or 6, attributed name.; Cockson, Thomas, engraver.; Fisher, John, 1569-1641. 1624 (1624) STC 25382; ESTC S122241 841,497 706

There are 29 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

in_o the_o body_n of_o st._n peter_n and_o the_o three_o young_a man_n st._n luke_n c._n 4.30_o affirm_v not_o that_o our_o saviour_n body_n be_v invisible_a but_o that_o he_o pass_v through_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o people_n and_o yet_o admit_v that_o he_o be_v then_o invisible_a the_o cause_n may_v be_v in_o the_o people_n eye_n luke_n 24._o 16._o or_o in_o the_o air_n and_o not_o in_o his_o body_n genes_n 19_o 11._o neither_o be_v actual_a gravity_n or_o actual_a combustibilitie_n or_o visibilitie_n so_o inseparable_a from_o a_o body_n as_o circumscription_n and_o distinction_n of_o part_n last_o for_o a_o body_n to_o be_v resplendent_a and_o to_o shine_v as_o the_o sun_n in_o glory_n be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o body_n but_o be_v of_o the_o perfection_n and_o happiness_n thereof_o matth._n 13._o 43._o but_o that_o a_o individual_a body_n may_v be_v in_o many_o place_n at_o once_o and_o in_o diverse_a form_n and_o according_a to_o diverse_a action_n 33._o and_o have_v no_o reference_n to_o place_n nor_o any_o property_n inward_a or_o outward_a of_o a_o true_a body_n be_v not_o divine_a verity_n but_o a_o audacious_a fiction_n or_o rather_o a_o incongruous_a dream_n and_o contradictory_n chimaera_n but_o that_o be_v verify_v in_o this_o question_n of_o the_o romist_n which_o ireneus_fw-la say_v 5._o multa_fw-la male_a oportet_fw-la interpretari_fw-la eos_fw-la qui_fw-la unum_fw-la non_fw-la volunt_fw-la rectè_fw-la intelligere_fw-la they_o be_v compel_v to_o expound_v many_o thing_n amiss_o which_o will_v not_o understand_v one_o thing_n aright_o jesuit_fw-la jesuit_o 2._o transubstantiation_n belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n this_o i_o prove_v that_o belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o this_o mystery_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n which_o be_v deny_v and_o take_v away_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n can_v be_v true_a take_v in_o the_o literal_a sense_n in_o which_o sense_n they_o be_v to_o be_v take_v as_o have_v be_v show_v but_o without_o grant_v transubstantiation_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v true_a take_v in_o the_o literal_a sense_n ergo_fw-la transubstantiation_n belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o this_o mystery_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n the_o minor_a be_v prove_v because_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n signify_v that_o the_o thing_n the_o priest_n hold_v in_o his_o hand_n be_v true_o real_o and_o substantial_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n for_o in_o this_o proposition_n this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o verb_n est_fw-la signify_v a_o conjunction_n between_o this_o in_o the_o priest_n hand_n and_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v a_o verb_n substantive_a take_v in_o his_o proper_a signification_n it_o signify_v a_o substantial_a identity_n between_o this_o in_o the_o priest_n hand_n and_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n but_o this_o in_o the_o priest_n hand_n be_v before_o consecration_n bread_n a_o thing_n substantial_o distinct_a from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n can_v by_o consecration_n be_v make_v substantial_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o father_n teach_v it_o be_v without_o some_o substantial_a catechetica_fw-la alteration_n or_o change_v and_o what_o other_o substantial_a change_n can_v make_v bread_n to_o become_v true_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n beside_o substantial_a conversion_n of_o the_o same_o into_o his_o body_n answer_n you_o can_v demonstrate_v that_o our_o saviour_n word_n must_v be_v expound_v literal_o for_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o cup_n luke_n 22.20_o beside_o other_o argument_n choke_v you_o and_o therefore_o the_o main_n ground_n of_o your_o doctrine_n be_v sandy_a the_o argument_n infer_v upon_o the_o same_o be_v infirm_a the_o weight_n of_o the_o first_o argument_n lie_v in_o this_o proposition_n our_o saviour_n word_n can_v be_v expound_v literal_o unless_o the_o romish_a doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v grant_v i_o answer_v first_o if_o transubstantiation_n be_v admit_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n can_v be_v literal_a for_o where_o there_o be_v any_o figure_n or_o trope_n the_o speech_n be_v not_o literal_a but_o in_o the_o sacramental_a word_n there_o be_v some_o figure_n or_o trope_n by_o our_o adversary_n confession_n 396._o second_o if_o the_o say_a word_n be_v understand_v literal_o than_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v proper_o break_v and_o his_o blood_n proper_o shed_v in_o the_o eucharist_n for_o saint_n paul_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v break_v for_o you_o 1._o cor._n 11.24_o saint_n luke_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o you_o but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o proper_o break_v fractione_n nor_o his_o blood_n proper_o shed_v in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n three_o it_o be_v a_o improper_a speech_n to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v the_o thing_n contain_v under_o these_o form_n 5._o be_v by_o conversion_n and_o substantial_a transmutation_n my_o body_n but_o papist_n maintain_v transubstantiation_n expound_v christ_n word_n in_o this_o or_o in_o some_o other_o manner_n 398._o whereby_o they_o depart_v from_o the_o propriety_n of_o the_o letter_n therefore_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n they_o depart_v from_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o word_n and_o consequent_o they_o make_v the_o same_o figurative_a jesuit_fw-la but_o some_o may_v object_v that_o as_o a_o man_n show_v a_o leather_n purse_n full_a of_o gold_n may_v true_o say_v this_o be_v gold_n or_o a_o paper_n wrap_v up_o full_a of_o silver_n may_v say_v this_o be_v silver_n so_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v under_o consecrate_a bread_n we_o may_v true_o say_v this_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n though_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n remain_v answer_n many_o famous_a schoolman_n h._n teach_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o consubstantiation_n to_o wit_n such_o a_o presence_n as_o maintain_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o remain_v together_o with_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o itself_o more_o probable_a and_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v follow_v than_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n but_o only_o because_o of_o the_o contrary_a definition_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o some_o of_o these_o doctor_n hold_v that_o the_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o very_o ancient_a 1._o and_o card._n caietan_n affirm_v mentio_fw-la that_o seclude_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o scripture_n which_o may_v compel_v one_o to_o understand_v the_o word_n proper_o jesuit_fw-la i_o answer_v that_o when_o substance_n be_v apt_a of_o their_o nature_n and_o ordain_v by_o use_n to_o contain_v other_o substance_n then_o show_v the_o substance_n that_o contain_v we_o may_v signify_v the_o substance_n contain_v as_o in_o the_o former_a example_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o their_o natural_a aptitude_n to_o contain_v other_o thing_n be_v vulgar_o know_v man_n understanding_n straight_o pass_v from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o substance_n contain_v to_o think_v of_o the_o thing_n contain_v therein_o but_o when_o substance_n be_v not_o by_o nature_n and_o custom_n ordain_v to_o contain_v other_o we_o can_v by_o show_v they_o demonstrate_v another_o because_o their_o outward_a form_n signify_v immediate_o the_o substance_n contain_v in_o they_o for_o example_n one_o put_v a_o piece_n of_o gold_n in_o a_o apple_n and_o show_v it_o cry_n this_o be_v gold_n in_o rigour_n of_o speech_n he_o say_v not_o true_a because_o the_o sense_n of_o his_o word_n be_v that_o the_o thing_n demonstrate_v immediate_o by_o the_o form_n and_o accident_n of_o that_o apple_n be_v gold_n yea_o put_v the_o case_n that_o one_o shall_v say_v this_o be_v gold_n show_v a_o piece_n of_o paper_n unfold_v in_o a_o manner_n not_o apt_a to_o contain_v any_o thing_n in_o it_o he_o shall_v not_o say_v true_a though_o by_o some_o devise_n he_o have_v put_v secret_o into_o it_o a_o piece_n of_o gold_n because_o when_o the_o paper_n be_v show_v display_v and_o not_o as_o contain_v something_o in_o it_o and_o yet_o be_v term_v gold_n the_o proper_a sense_n of_o that_o speech_n be_v that_o the_o substance_n immediate_o contain_v under_o the_o accident_n of_o paper_n be_v gold_n although_o it_o be_v cover_v with_o other_o accident_n than_o those_o that_o usual_o accompany_v the_o nature_n of_o gold_n wherefore_o the_o proposition_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v speak_v of_o a_o thing_n that_o natural_o be_v not_o apt_a nor_o by_o custom_n ordain_v to_o contain_v a_o humane_a body_n it_o can_v be_v understand_v literal_o but_o of_o the_o subject_n immediate_o contain_v under_o and_o demonstrate_v by_o the_o accident_n and_o outward_a semblance_n of_o bread_n now_o the_o thing_n that_o lie_v hide_v immediate_o under_o the_o accident_n
former_o upon_o the_o cross_n or_o which_o they_o have_v not_o at_o this_o present_a in_o heaven_n and_o transmutation_n and_o transubstantiation_n be_v different_a conversion_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o example_n of_o lot_n wife_n change_v into_o a_o pillar_n of_o salt_n gen._n 19_o 26._o and_o water_n change_v into_o wine_n joh._n 2.9_o for_o in_o these_o transmutation_n the_o common_a material_a substance_n remain_v the_o form_n and_o accident_n be_v only_o change_v jesuit_fw-la first_o by_o the_o expressenesse_n of_o their_o word_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o word_n more_o significant_a and_o expressive_a of_o a_o substantial_a change_n between_o bread_n and_o our_o saviour_n body_n than_o those_o the_o father_n use_n answer_n express_a word_n if_o they_o be_v figurative_a prove_v not_o a_o substantial_a change_n linguam_fw-la for_o the_o father_n use_v word_n which_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n import_v a_o substantial_a change_n when_o they_o treat_v of_o regeneration_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n also_o treat_v of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n they_o affirm_v that_o faithful_a communicant_n be_v change_v into_o the_o body_n and_o flesh_n of_o christ_n vivimus_fw-la which_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o understand_v not_o of_o a_o substantial_a change_n jesuit_fw-la s._n nyssen_n that_o the_o word_n make_v flesh_n be_v insert_v within_o 〈◊〉_d every_o faithful_a man_n by_o his_o flesh_n take_v his_o consistence_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n consecration_n transelement_a the_o nature_n of_o thing_n appear_v into_o the_o same_o flesh_n answer_n if_o the_o word_n of_o this_o father_n be_v understand_v of_o transubstantiation_n than_o the_o body_n of_o faithful_a receiver_n be_v convert_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n flesh_n for_o he_o say_v when_o the_o immortal_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v within_o he_o which_o have_v receive_v it_o it_o transmute_v he_o whole_o into_o his_o own_o nature_n naturam_fw-la also_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v convert_v into_o the_o divine_a nature_n 〈◊〉_d and_o christ_n shall_v be_v commix_v and_o contemper_v with_o the_o body_n of_o believer_n and_o bread_n shall_v be_v change_v into_o christ_n body_n as_o meat_n be_v into_o man_n body_n also_o gregory_n nyssen_n say_v 〈◊〉_d that_o christ_n body_n be_v insert_v into_o believer_n only_o last_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d transelementation_n 〈◊〉_d prove_v not_o transubstantiation_n for_o in_o transubstantiation_n the_o matter_n be_v destroy_v and_o the_o quantity_n and_o accident_n remain_v and_o in_o transelementation_n the_o matter_n remain_v and_o the_o essential_a and_o accidental_a form_n be_v alter_v jesuit_fw-la s._n cyril_n say_v that_o we_o may_v not_o feel_v horror_n see_v flesh_n and_o blood_n on_o the_o sacred_a altar_n the_o son_n of_o god_n condescend_v to_o our_o infirmity_n do_v penetrate_v with_o the_o power_n of_o life_n into_o the_o thing_n offer_v to_o wit_n bread_n and_o wine_n convert_n they_o into_o the_o verity_n of_o his_o own_o flesh_n that_o the_o body_n of_o life_n as_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a seed_n of_o vivification_n may_v be_v find_v in_o us._n answer_n this_o tract_n of_o s._n cyril_n according_a to_o vasques_n pane_fw-la the_o jesuit_n be_v not_o find_v among_o his_o ancient_a work_n but_o cite_v out_o of_o he_o by_o thomas_n aquinas_n and_o therefore_o the_o authority_n thereof_o may_v be_v suspect_v notwithstanding_o i_o answer_v as_o follow_v first_o s._n cyrill_n by_o the_o word_n convert_v they_o into_o the_o verity_n of_o his_o flesh_n understand_v not_o popish_a transub_v but_o mystical_a and_o sacramental_a conversion_n to_o wit_n conversion_n of_o signification_n use_n and_o operation_n for_o he_o speak_v of_o bread_n and_o wine_n not_o according_a to_o a_o part_n of_o their_o nature_n to_o wit_n their_o matter_n and_o substance_n but_o according_a to_o their_o whole_a nature_n contain_v substance_n accident_n and_o quantity_n now_o if_o the_o thing_n offer_v cessat_fw-la to_o god_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v the_o whole_a creature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o the_o same_o be_v convert_v into_o christ_n flesh_n then_o the_o accident_n and_o quantity_n be_v convert_v into_o christ_n body_n as_o well_o as_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n which_o romist_n deny_v second_o from_o the_o word_n conversion_n romist_n can_v prove_v transubstantiation_n for_o if_o the_o conversion_n be_v only_o of_o use_n relation_n and_o operation_n as_o in_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n than_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o because_o s._n cyrill_n teach_v conversion_n ergo_fw-la he_o teach_v transubstantiation_n and_o if_o it_o be_v a_o substantial_a conversion_n than_o also_o there_o can_v be_v popish_a transubstantiation_n for_o in_o this_o form_n and_o substance_n perish_v and_o the_o accident_n remain_v in_o the_o other_o the_o common_a matter_n remain_v and_o the_o form_n and_o accident_n perish_v 〈◊〉_d in_o all_o substantial_a conversion_n natural_a or_o miraculous_a there_o be_v a_o new_a thing_n produce_v out_o of_o that_o which_o be_v convert_v as_o appear_v in_o the_o conversion_n of_o water_n into_o wine_n and_o lot_n wife_n into_o a_o pillar_n of_o salt_n etc._n etc._n but_o in_o popish_a transubstantiation_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o produce_v anew_o erat_fw-la for_o it_o be_v preaexistent_a and_o receive_v no_o substantial_a change_n by_o the_o confession_n of_o 〈◊〉_d themselves_o 〈◊〉_d neither_o be_v it_o substantial_o unite_a unto_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o it_o give_v no_o subsistence_n to_o they_o and_o it_o sustain_v they_o not_o but_o it_o be_v unite_v accidental_o 〈◊〉_d only_a by_o be_v make_v present_a where_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o element_n former_o be_v now_o if_o water_n shall_v be_v pour_v upon_o the_o ground_n or_o otherwise_o consume_v and_o wine_n be_v bring_v from_o 〈◊〉_d as_o hail_v and_o snow_n adveniens_fw-la be_v and_o be_v place_v where_o water_n former_o be_v here_o be_v no_o substantial_a conversion_n so_o likewise_o when_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n cease_v and_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v bring_v 〈◊〉_d the_o place_n where_o these_o be_v no_o substantial_a thing_n be_v produce_v but_o one_o substance_n succee_v in_o the_o room_n of_o another_o by_o that_o which_o they_o style_v ubiation_n ubi_fw-la it_o be_v in_o vain_a therefore_o for_o romist_n to_o object_v the_o father_n word_n speak_v of_o conversion_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n because_o in_o popish_a transubstantiation_n there_o be_v not_o conversion_n of_o bread_n into_o christ_n body_n but_o only_o a_o local_a succession_n of_o christ_n body_n into_o the_o same_o ubitie_n where_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n former_o be_v illuc_fw-la three_o in_o all_o substantial_a conversion_n either_o a_o new_a thing_n be_v produce_v or_o the_o old_a preserve_v in_o transubstantiation_n no_o new_a thing_n be_v produce_v nor_o any_o old_a preserve_v ergo_fw-la transubstantiation_n be_v no_o conversion_n if_o they_o answer_v that_o some_o new_a thing_n be_v produce_v to_o wit_n a_o union_n of_o christ_n body_n with_o the_o sacramental_a sign_n informaretur_fw-la i_o answer_v that_o when_o a_o garment_n and_o a_o body_n be_v unite_v here_o be_v no_o substantial_a conversion_n or_o when_o a_o diamond_n and_o gold_n ring_n be_v unite_v or_o when_o the_o humanity_n or_o deity_n be_v unite_v in_o the_o person_n of_o christ._n if_o they_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n 〈◊〉_d be_v preserve_v as_o when_o nourishment_n 3_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o body_n it_o preserve_v the_o same_o then_o i_o demand_v whether_o christ_n body_n be_v preserve_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o be_v and_o if_o they_o affirm_v than_o it_o be_v also_o produce_v according_a to_o the_o be_v habet_fw-la because_o the_o same_o thing_n which_o produce_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n do_v at_o this_o present_a only_o preserve_v it_o and_o no_o new_a thing_n superadd_v but_o it_o be_v not_o produce_v anew_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v not_o preserve_v or_o continue_v in_o the_o be_v which_o it_o former_o have_v by_o any_o new_a action_n if_o they_o answer_v it_o be_v preserve_v according_a to_o the_o sacramental_a be_v i_o reply_v that_o this_o sacramental_a be_v must_v be_v either_o the_o be_v of_o christ_n body_n according_a to_o matter_n and_o form_n but_o then_o christ_n body_n receive_v no_o such_o be_v for_o it_o be_v preexistent_a or_o else_o it_o be_v the_o union_n and_o application_n of_o christ_n body_n to_o the_o sacramental_a sign_n and_o then_o i_o reply_v that_o this_o union_n be_v only_o accidental_a accidentaria_fw-la and_o in_o regard_n of_o presentialitie_n and_o ubitie_n and_o consequent_o it_o be_v no_o conversion_n of_o bread_n into_o christ_n body_n but_o a_o translation_n and_o adduction_n of_o christ_n body_n from_o heaven_n unto_o the_o place_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n but_o translation_n and_o adduction_n of_o one_o substance_n into_o
heb._n 7.23.27.28_o &_o ca._n 10._o 21._o neither_o be_v there_o any_o word_n or_o sentence_n in_o our_o saviour_n doctrine_n concern_v any_o real_a sacrifice_n but_o only_o of_o himself_o upon_o the_o cross_n neither_o be_v any_o altar_n etc._n use_v and_o ordain_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o if_o in_o all_o real_a sacrifice_n the_o matter_n of_o the_o oblation_n must_v be_v real_o destroy_v and_o change_v and_o no_o physical_a destruction_n or_o change_n be_v make_v in_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n or_o in_o the_o element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n by_o transubstantiation_n sacrificium_fw-la then_o romist_n have_v devise_v a_o real_a sacrifice_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o have_v no_o divine_a institution_n second_o there_o be_v no_o create_a virtue_n inhaerent_a in_o the_o sacramental_a word_n divina_fw-la as_o they_o be_v pronounce_v by_o a_o priest_n to_o make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n local_o present_a in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n but_o when_o all_o the_o word_n and_o all_o the_o action_n be_v lawful_o perform_v which_o christ_n command_v the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v assistant_n to_o his_o own_o ordinance_n and_o deliver_v unto_o faithful_a people_n the_o crucify_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n shed_v for_o our_o sin_n upon_o the_o cross_n and_o although_o the_o crucify_a body_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v sever_v from_o the_o soul_n yet_o the_o deity_n even_o then_o remain_v unite_v to_o that_o body_n which_o then_o be_v not_o dead_a in_o regard_n of_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n and_o all_o they_o which_o receive_v that_o body_n by_o operative_a faith_n be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n thereof_o and_o by_o this_o receive_n be_v more_o and_o more_o ingraff_v into_o christ._n jesuit_fw-la three_o if_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n be_v only_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o soul_n and_o blood_n be_v not_o by_o concomitancie_n there_o the_o communicant_n shall_v receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o not_o true_o christ_n as_o our_o adversary_n grant_n 74._o calvin_n special_o say_v quis_fw-la sanus_fw-la &_o sobrius_fw-la christi_fw-la corpus_fw-la christum_fw-la esse_fw-la sibi_fw-la persuadeat_fw-la and_o again_o ne_o fando_fw-la quidem_fw-la auditum_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la aut_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la deum_fw-la &_o hominem_fw-la appellari_fw-la but_o father_n affirm_v most_o constant_o that_o not_o only_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o cor._n christ_n himself_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n that_o we_o take_v in_o the_o dominical_a refection_n the_o word_n make_v flesh_n that_o by_o the_o consecration_n of_o the_o mystery_n we_o receive_v the_o very_a son_n of_o god_n that_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n we_o lodge_v within_o we_o the_o sovereign_a king_n and_o that_o we_o see_v christ_n feel_v christ_n eat_v christ_n non_fw-la regium_fw-la pverum_fw-la sed_fw-la ipsum_fw-la unigenitum_fw-la dei_fw-la filium_fw-la a_o hundred_o other_o place_n may_v be_v bring_v where_o the_o father_n call_v the_o consecrate_a bread_n christ_n and_o consequent_o they_o do_v not_o think_v there_o be_v the_o mere_a body_n without_o blood_n and_o soul_n see_v as_o calvin_n do_v confess_v it_o be_v a_o absurd_a manner_n of_o speech_n to_o term_v christ_n the_o mere_a body_n of_o christ_n and_o such_o a_o form_n of_o speech_n be_v never_o hear_v of_o hitherto_o in_o the_o world_n ergo_fw-la concomitancie_n that_o be_v christ_n real_a and_o entire_a body_n soul_n flesh_n blood_n to_o be_v under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o father_n answer_n it_o be_v grant_v that_o worthy_a communicant_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n receive_v christ_n joh._n 6._o 33_o 35_o 48._o but_o sacramental_a eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n be_v the_o mean_n by_o which_o they_o be_v unite_v and_o incorporate_v with_o christ_n himself_o therefore_o the_o objection_n to_o wit_n if_o the_o soul_n and_o blood_n be_v not_o in_o christ_n body_n by_o concomitancie_n communicant_n shall_v receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o not_o true_o christ_n be_v inconsequent_a because_o by_o receive_v the_o one_o they_o receive_v the_o other_o and_o the_o former_a be_v the_o instrumental_a cause_n of_o the_o latter_a so_o in_o this_o kind_n of_o spiritual_a concomitancie_n neither_o the_o father_n nor_o calvin_n nor_o we_o nor_o you_o need_v be_v at_o any_o difference_n jesuit_fw-la this_o principle_n which_o be_v no_o less_o certain_a than_o the_o true_a real_a presence_n suppose_v i_o infer_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n to_o wit_n under_o the_o sole_a form_n of_o bread_n by_o this_o argument_n if_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n be_v not_o against_o the_o substance_n either_o of_o christ_n institution_n or_o of_o his_o sacrament_n or_o his_o precept_n or_o of_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n it_o be_v lawful_a justifiable_a and_o for_o just_a reason_n may_v be_v command_v by_o the_o church_n this_o proposition_n be_v true_a because_o there_o neither_o be_v other_o cause_n of_o dislike_n that_o may_v not_o be_v reduce_v to_o these_o four_o neither_o do_v christ_n institution_n or_o sacrament_n or_o precept_n or_o the_o primitive_a practice_n bind_v we_o to_o keep_v they_o further_o than_o in_o substance_n the_o accidental_a circumstance_n of_o institution_n sacrament_n precept_n primitive_a custom_n be_v variable_a according_a to_o the_o variable_a disposition_n of_o thing_n unto_o which_o the_o church_n militant_a in_o this_o life_n be_v subject_a now_o i_o assume_v concomitancie_n be_v suppose_v it_o may_v be_v make_v evident_a that_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n be_v not_o against_o the_o substance_n either_o of_o christ_n institution_n or_o of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o of_o his_o precept_n or_o of_o his_o primitive_a practice_n for_o the_o substance_n of_o these_o four_o obligation_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o to_o wit_n that_o we_o be_v true_o and_o real_o partaker_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n which_o be_v full_o do_v by_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n as_o i_o will_v show_v in_o the_o four_o consequent_a section_n answer_n if_o concomitancie_n which_o be_v style_v in_o this_o place_n by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o principle_n be_v grant_v yet_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n be_v not_o justifiable_a for_o although_o it_o deprive_v not_o people_n of_o christ_n blood_n as_o it_o be_v a_o bodily_a part_n adeps_fw-la contain_v in_o the_o vein_n yet_o it_o deprive_v they_o of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v shed_v and_o pour_v out_o and_o offer_v in_o sacrifice_n for_o they_o to_o the_o main_a argument_n i_o answer_v deny_v the_o assumption_n for_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o the_o eucharist_n by_o christ_n who_o hallow_v two_o material_a element_n bread_n and_o wine_n appoint_v they_o a_o distinct_a signification_n deliver_v they_o indifferent_o to_o all_o the_o communicant_n and_o annex_v a_o promise_n to_o the_o reception_n of_o the_o one_o as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o sumption_n of_o the_o other_o second_o it_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o express_a precept_n of_o christ_n say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o and_o to_o s._n paul_n precept_n 〈◊〉_d 1._o cor._n 11._o 28._o three_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n 11.23.26_o and_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n didicistis_fw-la be_v against_o it_o four_o the_o people_n which_o receive_v in_o one_o kind_n receive_v only_o a_o moiety_n and_o piece_n but_o not_o the_o whole_a and_o entire_a sacrament_n jesuit_fw-la jesuit_o 2._o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n not_o against_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o christ._n divine_a institution_n be_v a_o action_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o give_v be_v unto_o thing_n with_o reference_n unto_o some_o special_a end_n this_o end_n be_v twofold_a the_o one_o corporal_a and_o temporal_a for_o which_o god_n have_v institute_v agreeable_a &_o 〈◊〉_d mean_n that_o man_n may_v be_v bear_v into_o this_o world_n he_o do_v institute_v marriage_n and_o for_o maintenance_n of_o the_o say_a life_n be_v have_v he_o or_o dain_v many_o sort_n of_o meat_n the_o other_o end_n be_v spiritual_a for_o which_o god_n have_v institute_v sacrament_n as_o for_o the_o first_o obtain_v of_o grace_n and_o spiritual_a life_n the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o penance_n and_o for_o the_o preserve_n of_o grace_n and_o increase_v therein_o particular_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n that_o a_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o use_v the_o jnstitution_n of_o god_n two_o thing_n be_v require_v first_o that_o the_o end_n thereof_o be_v necessary_a and_o he_o bind_v to_o endeavour_v the_o attain_n thereof_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o though_o marriage_n be_v the_o jnstitution_n of_o god_n appoint_v to_o propagate_v mankind_n yet_o every_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o marry_v because_o he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o propagate_v
belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o this_o mystery_n and_o can_v be_v call_v in_o question_n without_o danger_n of_o misbelief_n first_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n second_o that_o this_o be_v do_v by_o transubstantiation_n answer_n whatsoever_o be_v certain_o reveal_v in_o holy_a scripture_n concern_v the_o manner_n of_o christ_n presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n must_v be_v believe_v and_o not_o deny_v and_o so_o much_o be_v reveal_v as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o enable_v the_o minister_n &_o people_n to_o understand_v by_o faith_n that_o christ_n word_n and_o promise_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v infallible_o true_a and_o always_o fulfil_v when_o his_o ordinance_n be_v observe_v but_o christ_n affirm_v not_o that_o the_o shape_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n neither_o that_o he_o be_v present_a by_o carnal_a union_n of_o his_o natural_a body_n and_o blood_n with_o the_o form_n or_o accident_n of_o the_o element_n or_o that_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v present_a in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n by_o transubstantiation_n jesuit_fw-la jesuit_o 1._o that_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n to_o prove_v this_o i_o suppose_v as_o certain_a that_o the_o body_n 399.400_o of_o christ_n be_v true_o and_o real_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o supper_n this_o i_o may_v just_o suppose_v see_v your_o majesty_n do_v profess_v to_o hold_v a_o presence_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n no_o less_o true_a than_o we_o hold_v and_o consequent_o you_o will_v not_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n figurative_o as_o sacramentary_n do_v for_o they_o make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n present_a in_o the_o eucharistical_a bread_n but_o as_o in_o a_o figure_n hold_v not_o a_o true_a nor_o a_o real_a presence_n but_o only_o a_o presence_n by_o imagination_n and_o conceit_n as_o be_v evident_a answer_n real_a presence_n be_v take_v two_o way_n first_o for_o a_o true_a and_o effectual_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o as_o man_n receive_v the_o external_a sign_n by_o his_o natural_a part_n receive_v also_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o present_v by_o the_o action_n of_o his_o spiritual_a faculty_n to_o wit_n by_o a_o operative_a faith_n pertingit_fw-la joh._n 6.51.53_o 54_o 55_o 56_o 57_o second_o for_o a_o corporal_a presence_n when_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o present_v be_v according_a to_o the_o natural_a substance_n thereof_o contain_v under_o the_o shape_n of_o the_o outward_a sign_n sacramento_n and_o together_o with_o they_o convey_v into_o the_o mouth_n stomach_n and_o bodily_a part_n his_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n and_o all_o his_o orthodoxal_a people_n believe_v real_a presence_n according_a to_o the_o first_o acceptation_n but_o the_o fame_n be_v deny_v according_a to_o the_o latter_a acceptation_n the_o jesuit_n be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o distinction_n or_o else_o dissemble_v the_o same_o dispute_v as_o follow_v they_o which_o hold_v a_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n no_o less_o true_a than_o papist_n themselves_o hold_v can_v understand_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n etc._n etc._n figurative_o but_o his_o majesty_n hold_v a_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n no_o less_o true_a than_o papist_n themselves_o hold_v ergo_fw-la his_o majesty_n can_v understand_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n figurative_o i_o answer_v the_o mayor_n of_o the_o former_a argument_n be_v deny_v for_o a_o true_a real_a and_o effectual_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n may_v be_v teach_v and_o deliver_v by_o a_o figurative_a seminantis_fw-la speech_n for_o first_o the_o mystical_a head_n be_v real_o true_o and_o effectual_o present_a to_o the_o mystical_a body_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o this_o presence_n be_v teach_v in_o holy_a scripture_n by_o figurative_a word_n read_v psal._n 45._o salomon_n song_z eph._n 5._o joh._n 15._o second_o one_o part_n of_o our_o saviour_n word_n about_o the_o sacrament_n to_o wit_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n luc._n 22.20_o be_v figurative_a by_o confession_n of_o romist_n themselves_o requirit_fw-la and_o yet_o they_o hold_v the_o thing_n express_v and_o mean_v by_o those_o word_n to_o be_v real_o give_v it_o be_v false_a therefore_o which_o the_o jesuit_n and_o his_o consort_n affirm_v that_o protestant_n expound_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n figurative_o do_v by_o this_o sense_n overthrow_v the_o true_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n and_o bring_v in_o only_a a_o fantastical_a and_o imaginary_a presence_n for_o a_o mystical_a presence_n wrought_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v as_o real_a and_o true_a a_o presence_n potest_fw-la in_o one_o kind_n as_o a_o corporal_a and_o carnal_a presence_n be_v in_o another_o kind_n but_o the_o romist_n themselves_o be_v the_o man_n which_o contend_v for_o their_o carnal_a presence_n give_v we_o a_o fantastical_a body_n of_o christ_n in_o stead_n of_o a_o true_a and_o natural_a body_n and_o fantastical_a element_n to_o wit_n accident_n and_o empty_a shadow_n of_o element_n in_o stead_n of_o the_o substantial_a creature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n by_o this_o absurd_a doctrine_n utter_o subvert_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n jesuit_fw-la wherein_o as_o your_o majesty_n know_v they_o contradict_v the_o 4._o ancient_a church_n which_o teach_v express_o that_o christ_n do_v not_o say_v this_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o exhort_v we_o to_o believe_v christ_n on_o his_o word_n he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n i_o pray_v you_o let_v we_o believe_v he_o who_o we_o have_v believe_v verity_n can_v utter_v untruth_n and_o herein_o acknowledge_v with_o your_o majesty_n a_o most_o high_a and_o incomprehensible_a mystery_n which_o be_v no_o mystery_n at_o all_o the_o word_n be_v understand_v in_o a_o mere_a figurative_a sense_n answer_n the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o christ_n utter_v these_o word_n or_o not_o this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o doubt_n of_o the_o verity_n of_o our_o saviour_n speech_n or_o whether_o we_o must_v believe_v his_o word_n or_o not_o to_o which_o purpose_n gaudentius_n veritas_fw-la speak_v but_o the_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n to_o wit_n whether_o this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n be_v to_o be_v expound_v literal_o argument_n for_o the_o negative_a part_n be_v these_o which_o follow_v first_o if_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v deliver_v in_o the_o eucharist_n our_o adversary_n will_v grant_v ipsum_fw-la that_o the_o word_n be_v figurative_a because_o one_o individual_a substance_n can_v be_v predicate_v of_o another_o properly_z but_o it_o shall_v be_v prove_v in_o the_o section_n follow_v both_o out_o of_o scripture_n and_o father_n that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v deliver_v in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n second_o the_o word_n whereby_o the_o wine_n be_v consecrate_v luc._n 22.20_o be_v tropical_a by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n ponit_fw-la three_o if_o the_o word_n be_v take_v proper_o than_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v deliver_v and_o receive_v without_o the_o soul_n and_o deity_n of_o christ_n for_o in_o propriety_n of_o speech_n the_o body_n be_v a_o distinct_a and_o diverse_a thing_n from_o the_o soul_n and_o likewise_o the_o blood_n four_o that_o which_o christ_n deliver_v to_o be_v eat_v and_o drink_v by_o his_o disciple_n he_o do_v sacramental_o eat_v and_o drink_v himself_o luc._n 22.15_o as_o s._n hierome_n 83._o s._n chrysostome_n euthymius_n with_o many_o schoolman_n conveniunt_fw-la affirm_v but_o if_o the_o word_n be_v literal_o understand_v than_o he_o do_v eat_v his_o own_o body_n and_o drink_v his_o own_o blood_n five_o if_o the_o word_n be_v understand_v literal_o than_o christ_n give_v his_o passable_a and_o mortal_a body_n 14._o to_o the_o disciple_n but_o i_o trow_v no_o jesuit_n will_v maintain_v that_o a_o body_n mortal_a and_o passable_a can_v be_v in_o many_o host_n or_o mouth_n at_o once_o neither_o can_v the_o same_o be_v corporal_o eat_v without_o sensible_a touch_v and_o feel_v thereof_o or_o divide_v one_o part_n thereof_o from_o another_o six_o if_o our_o saviour_n word_n be_v literal_o expound_v then_o infidel_n dog_n and_o swine_n may_v lutum_fw-la eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n but_o all_o that_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v
everlasting_a life_n joh._n 6.49.50_o 51.54.56_o seven_o if_o our_o saviour_n word_n be_v literal_a regular_a and_o plain_a as_o papist_n pretend_v than_o they_o themselves_o can_v not_o be_v distract_v and_o divide_v about_o the_o sense_n thereof_o but_o they_o be_v notorious_o divide_v 1._o first_o some_o of_o they_o say_v that_o the_o pronoune_n this_o signify_v nothing_o 48._o other_o say_v it_o signify_v the_o bread_n potest_fw-la alex._n hales_n hocest_n corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la sensus_fw-la est_fw-la signatum_fw-la hoc_fw-la signo_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la panis_fw-la transubstantiandus_fw-la in_o corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la that_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v the_o bread_n present_o to_o be_v transubstantiate_a into_o my_o body_n be_v my_o body_n some_o say_v it_o signify_v the_o accident_n and_o form_n of_o bread_n other_o it_o signify_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n some_o say_v it_o signify_v confuse_o that_o which_o be_v contain_v under_o the_o form_n and_o every_o of_o these_o opinion_n have_v sundry_a crook_n wind_n and_o limitation_n christi_fw-la second_o touch_v the_o verb_n substantive_a est_fw-la be_v some_o expound_v it_o by_o continetur_fw-la 2._o under_o these_o form_n my_o body_n be_v contain_v other_o expound_v it_o by_o erit_fw-la 2._o this_o shall_v be_v my_o body_n when_o the_o sentence_n be_v end_v some_o say_v it_o signify_v transmutatur_fw-la 48._o it_o be_v change_v and_o convert_v three_o touch_v the_o word_n corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la my_o body_n some_o say_v it_o be_v materia_fw-la prima_fw-la the_o first_o matter_n of_o christ_n body_n other_o the_o materiate_a body_n with_o the_o reasonable_a soul_n other_o a_o body_n organical_a without_o reference_n to_o be_v a_o live_a body_n or_o a_o dead_a other_o a_o live_a body_n some_o say_v it_o be_v a_o body_n without_o quantity_n dimension_n or_o part_n 2._o other_o a_o body_n have_v quantity_n without_o extension_n figure_n &_o order_n of_o part_n 4._o other_o a_o body_n have_v quantity_n without_o extrinsecall_a reference_n to_o place_n 14._o a_o immaterial_a body_n like_v unto_o angel_n and_o spirit_n 5._o and_o they_o resemble_v the_o same_o by_o the_o image_n of_o man_n face_n reflect_v in_o a_o glass_n 7._o a_o body_n have_v the_o stature_n of_o a_o man_n and_o yet_o contain_v in_o every_o crumb_n of_o bread_n specierum_fw-la thus_o while_o romist_n deny_v that_o there_o be_v a_o figure_n in_o our_o saviour_n word_n they_o fall_v into_o innumerable_a absurdity_n &_o in_o stead_n of_o the_o true_a and_o perfect_a body_n of_o christ_n crucify_v for_o we_o and_o communicate_v in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n they_o reach_v we_o a_o fantastical_a body_n and_o a_o very_a vain_a shadow_n and_o image_n of_o christ_n real_a body_n but_o the_o adversary_n to_o make_v the_o contrary_a tenet_n appear_v catholic_a affirm_v that_o the_o ancient_a church_n express_o deny_v our_o saviour_n word_n to_o be_v figurative_a and_o in_o his_o margin_n he_o point_v out_o certain_a author_n euthymius_n theophilact_n damascene_fw-la etc._n etc._n i_o answer_v although_o these_o author_n be_v none_o of_o they_o ancient_a but_o post_fw-la nati_fw-la affirm_v that_o christ_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n deliver_v not_o only_o a_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n but_o his_o true_a body_n which_o be_v also_o our_o tenet_n yet_o they_o say_v not_o that_o there_o be_v no_o trope_n or_o figure_n in_o our_o saviour_n word_n theophylact_v 14._o word_n be_v non_fw-la tantum_fw-la figura_fw-la &_o exemplar_n est_fw-la corporis_fw-la christi_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o be_v not_o only_o a_o figure_n or_o similitude_n of_o christ_n body_n euthymius_n ignitum_fw-la esaias_n behold_v a_o fiery_a coal_n the_o coal_n be_v not_o simple_o or_o only_o wood_n but_o fiery_a wood_n such_o be_v this_o fiery_a coal_n in_o this_o great_a mystery_n second_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o these_o author_n teach_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v sacramental_o or_o mystical_o convert_v do_v also_o maintain_v that_o the_o say_v element_n remain_v in_o their_o material_a substance_n etc._n and_o that_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v receive_v into_o the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o soul_n and_o they_o say_v 〈◊〉_d far_o that_o christ_n change_v the_o worthy_a receiver_n into_o his_o body_n jesuit_fw-la as_o for_o some_o place_n of_o father_n bring_v to_o the_o contrary_a how_o they_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v your_o majesty_n be_v not_o ignorant_a 12._o saint_n augustine_n say_v that_o christ_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n a_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n speak_v not_o of_o a_o bare_a empty_a figure_n but_o of_o the_o figure_n of_o a_o thing_n real_o present_a as_o likewise_o in_o another_o place_n when_o he_o say_v christ_n affirm_v it_o be_v his_o body_n when_o he_o give_v a_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n though_o there_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o speak_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o manichee_n who_o hold_v that_o christ_n have_v not_o true_a flesh_n but_o a_o mere_a figure_n shape_n and_o shadow_n of_o flesh_n against_o who_o in_o that_o place_n he_o undertake_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o figure_n of_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v term_v the_o thing_n itself_o argumento_fw-la ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la that_o christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n when_o he_o give_v but_o a_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n to_o wit_n as_o you_o think_v tertullian_n have_v this_o speech_n christ_n take_v bread_n into_o his_o hand_n and_o distribute_v it_o to_o his_o disciple_n make_v the_o same_o his_o body_n say_v hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la figura_fw-la corporis_fw-la mei_fw-la where_o figura_fw-la corporis_fw-la mei_fw-la be_v refer_v not_o unto_o corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la as_o a_o explication_n thereof_o but_o unto_o hoc_fw-la in_o this_o manner_n hoc_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la figura_fw-la corporis_fw-la mei_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la this_o to_o be_v tertullians_n meaning_n appear_v marcionem_fw-la by_o the_o drift_n of_o his_o discourse_n in_o that_o place_n for_o tertullian_n be_v to_o show_v that_o whereas_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n bread_n be_v afigure_v of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n mittamus_fw-la lignum_fw-la in_o panem_fw-la eius_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la crucem_fw-la in_o corpus_fw-la eius_fw-la christ_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n make_v this_o figure_n to_o be_v true_o and_o real_o his_o body_n take_v bread_n into_o his_o hand_n say_v this_o that_o be_v this_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n be_v my_o body_n as_o if_o he_o say_v bread_n which_o ancient_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n i_o do_v now_o make_v to_o be_v true_o and_o real_o my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v a_o usual_a phrase_n in_o tertullian_n 29._o who_o not_o to_o interrupt_v the_o sentence_n of_o holy_a scripture_n add_v his_o explication_n of_o the_o subject_n not_o present_o but_o after_o the_o attribute_n as_o when_o he_o say_v christus_fw-la mortuus_fw-la est_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la unctus_fw-la the_o sense_n whereof_o be_v christus_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la unctus_fw-la mortuus_fw-la est_fw-la answer_n many_o of_o the_o father_n 61._o treat_v of_o the_o sacramental_a sign_n call_v they_o figure_n representation_n similitude_n memorial_n antitipes_n etc._n etc._n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n but_o that_o which_o be_v a_o figure_n similitude_n and_o representation_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v not_o proper_o the_o same_o saint_n augustine_n sit_fw-la it_o be_v a_o figurative_a speech_n command_v we_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o lord_n passion_n and_o sweet_o and_o profitable_o to_o keep_v in_o mind_n that_o his_o flesh_n be_v crucify_v and_o wound_v for_o us._n the_o lord_n do_v not_o stick_v to_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n when_o he_o give_v the_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n 98._o origen_n math._n this_o i_o speak_v of_o the_o typical_a and_o figurative_a body_n saint_n ambrose_n 5._o which_o be_v the_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n saint_n chrysostome_n 11._o in_o the_o sanctify_a vessel_n there_o be_v not_o the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o mystery_n of_o his_o body_n be_v there_o contain_v gratian'ss_n gloss_n prosper_n the_o divine_a bread_n which_o represent_v the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o improper_o beda_n 22._o substitute_v his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o figure_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n druthmarus_n 26._o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v apt_o figure_v thereby_o bertram_z 12._o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v figurative_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n and_o tertullian_n more_o ancient_a than_o any_o of_o these_o sai_z that_o bread_n represent_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n 14._o and_o he_o say_v in_o two_o place_n 40._o that_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n the_o jesuit_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o these_o plain_a testimony_n take_v notice_n only_o of_o s._n
augustine_n and_o tertullian_n and_o concern_v the_o first_o he_o say_v that_o s._n augustine_n speak_v not_o of_o a_o bare_a and_o empty_a figure_n but_o of_o the_o figure_n of_o a_o thing_n real_o present_a but_o this_o answer_n be_v deceitful_a for_o the_o sacramental_a element_n be_v a_o true_a and_o lively_a figure_n and_o not_o a_o bare_a and_o empty_a sign_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n and_o although_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o essential_o contain_v and_o enclose_v in_o the_o shape_n or_o material_a substance_n of_o the_o element_n yet_o they_o be_v real_o communicate_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n at_z and_o by_o the_o faithful_a and_o worthy_a receive_n of_o these_o divine_a mystery_n the_o second_o place_n of_o s._n augustine_n admit_v not_o the_o jesuit_n solution_n for_o one_o difference_n between_o the_o manichee_n and_o this_o father_n be_v concern_v moses_n his_o word_n deut._n 12.23_o thou_o shall_v not_o eat_v the_o blood_n for_o the_o blood_n be_v the_o soul_n s._n augustine_n say_v 12._o possum_fw-la interpretari_fw-la praeceptum_fw-la illud_fw-la in_o signo_fw-la esse_fw-la positum_fw-la i_o may_v expound_v that_o commandment_n by_o say_v it_o be_v set_v down_o in_o a_o sign_n for_o christ_n doubt_v not_o to_o affirm_v svi_fw-la this_o be_v my_o body_n when_o he_o give_v a_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n in_o these_o word_n s._n augustine_n teach_v that_o as_o the_o blood_n be_v call_v the_o soul_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o sign_n so_o likewise_o the_o bread_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o his_o body_n this_o similitude_n prove_v that_o s._n augustine_n hold_v our_o saviour_n word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n to_o be_v a_o sigurative_a enunciation_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n affirm_v by_o us._n tertullian_n appellat_fw-la affirm_v express_o of_o bread_n which_o he_o receive_v into_o his_o hand_n and_o distribute_v to_o his_o disciple_n that_o it_o be_v a_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o the_o adversary_n 〈◊〉_d expound_v his_o word_n in_o this_o manner_n the_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n be_v my_o body_n be_v voluntary_a or_o rather_o sophistical_a for_o the_o word_n immediate_o follow_v be_v he_o call_v bread_n his_o body_n and_o in_o other_o place_n he_o make_v bread_n the_o subject_n of_o the_o proposition_n 10._o this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o the_o accident_n and_o shape_n of_o bread_n be_v not_o bread_n neither_o do_v our_o saviour_n when_o he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n demonstrate_v the_o form_n only_o of_o bread_n or_o command_v the_o form_n only_o of_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o be_v corporal_o receive_v for_o he_o do_v demonstrate_v that_o which_o be_v sacramental_o change_v but_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v not_o change_v into_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n by_o the_o confession_n of_o papist_n themselves_o jesuit_fw-la this_o suppose_a i_o infer_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v present_a in_o the_o mystical_a supper_n not_o only_o to_o the_o faithful_a that_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n nor_o only_o to_o the_o place_n or_o church_n where_o the_o holy_a synaxis_n be_v celebrate_v but_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n in_o the_o very_a same_o place_n therewith_o this_o manner_n of_o presence_n be_v clear_o consequent_a upon_o the_o precedent_n and_o that_o grant_v this_o can_v be_v deny_v for_o the_o reason_n for_o which_o christian_n hold_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v real_o &_o true_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v because_o they_o can_v otherwise_o in_o proper_a and_o plain_a sense_n verify_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n to_o say_v of_o bread_n this_o be_v my_o body_n wherefore_o we_o must_v either_o put_v no_o real_a presence_n at_o all_o or_o else_o put_v such_o a_o real_a presence_n as_o be_v able_a to_o verify_v the_o foresay_a speech_n in_o proper_a and_o rigorous_a sense_n but_o if_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o the_o same_o place_n with_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n contain_v under_o the_o form_n thereof_o it_o can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v very_o and_o real_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n for_o though_o we_o shall_v suppose_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o leave_v heaven_n and_o be_v substantial_o present_a in_o the_o church_n where_o the_o sacrament_n be_v give_v yet_o this_o suppose_a presence_n will_v no_o way_n further_o the_o verify_n of_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n except_o his_o body_n be_v veil_v and_o cover_v with_o the_o sensible_a accident_n of_o bread_n so_o that_o it_o be_v demonstrate_v by_o they_o and_o point_v unto_o they_o one_o may_v true_o say_v this_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ._n for_o why_o shall_v consecrate_v bread_n be_v term_v true_o and_o substantial_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n if_o his_o body_n be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o in_o the_o same_o place_n with_o it_o wherefore_o the_o father_n affirm_v that_o christ_n be_v so_o in_o this_o sacrament_n as_o he_o be_v veil_v with_o the_o semblance_n of_o bread_n as_o s._n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o his_o book_n high_o commend_v by_o dr._n whitaker_n 32._o say_v let_v we_o therefore_o with_o all_o certitude_n receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n be_v give_v thou_o his_o body_n yea_o calvin_n say_v in_o the_o supper_n christ_n jesus_n to_o wit_n his_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v true_o give_v under_o the_o sign_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n answer_n although_o the_o mystical_a word_n be_v not_o understand_v proper_o and_o rigorous_o yet_o we_o may_v true_o and_o real_o though_o spiritual_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n by_o a_o live_a faith_n joh._n 6.54_o manducasti_fw-la 1._o cor._n 10.16_o the_o food_n which_o enter_v into_o the_o body_n must_v be_v local_o present_a but_o this_o food_n enter_v not_o into_o the_o body_n but_o it_o be_v the_o bread_n of_o life_n which_o nourish_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o soul_n say_v s._n ambrose_n assumè_fw-la but_o the_o obiector_n demand_v why_o consecrate_a bread_n shall_v be_v term_v true_o &_o substantial_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n if_o his_o body_n be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o in_o the_o same_o place_n with_o it_o our_o answer_n be_v because_o of_o the_o sacramental_a union_n between_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n represent_v etc._n and_o spiritual_o communicate_v to_o the_o worthy_a receivor_fw-la by_o that_o sign_n as_o a_o king_n crown_n may_v be_v call_v a_o kingdom_n because_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n thereof_o and_o the_o place_v thereof_o upon_o the_o head_n may_v be_v a_o mean_n of_o confer_v a_o kingdom_n so_o likewise_o in_o sacramental_a speech_n the_o outward_a sign_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v because_o it_o represent_v it_o and_o be_v by_o divine_a institution_n a_o effectual_a instrument_n to_o apply_v and_o communicate_v the_o same_o 1._o cor._n 10.16_o and_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n christ_n body_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o the_o bread_n and_o his_o blood_n in_o the_o cup_n not_o by_o local_a presence_n or_o as_o wine_n be_v contain_v in_o a_o vessel_n which_o s._n cyrill_n affirm_v not_o but_o virtual_o and_o by_o relation_n and_o spiritual_a donation_n because_o when_o the_o minister_n deliver_v the_o outward_a sign_n and_o the_o communicant_a receive_v the_o same_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 4._o deliver_v and_o communicate_v the_o thing_n signify_v to_o the_o believe_a soul_n jesuit_fw-la whence_o it_o be_v also_o consequent_a that_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v contain_v under_o a_o consecrate_a host_n be_v the_o same_o never_o so_o little_a for_o by_o this_o mystery_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v demonstrable_a by_o the_o sensible_a accident_n so_o that_o consecrate_a bread_n may_v be_v term_v true_o real_o &_o substantial_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o a_o parcel_n or_o part_n thereof_o only_o but_o be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n whole_o and_o entire_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n consecrate_a bread_n can_v not_o true_o and_o proper_o be_v term_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o a_o sole_a part_n and_o 〈◊〉_d thereof_o again_o we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o and_o real_o present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o only_o to_o the_o end_n that_o it_o may_v in_o the_o supper_n be_v true_o and_o real_o eat_v to_o nourish_v and_o feed_v man_n soul_n and_o if_o he_o be_v eat_v only_o mental_o by_o faith_n we_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o think_v that_o he_o be_v present_a more_o than_o mental_o by_o faith_n the_o presence_n of_o sumitur_fw-la his_o body_n be_v ordain_v unto_o the_o manducation_n thereof_o for_o else_o why_o do_v he_o institute_v this_o sacrament_n
of_o bread_n which_o be_v once_o substantial_o bread_n can_v become_v substantial_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n except_o it_o be_v substantial_o convert_v into_o his_o body_n or_o personal_o assume_v by_o the_o same_o body_n and_o see_v this_o second_o manner_n of_o union_n between_o bread_n and_o christ_n body_n be_v impossible_a and_o reject_v by_o protestant_n as_o well_o as_o by_o catholic_n we_o may_v conclude_v that_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n real_a presence_n can_v be_v believe_v in_o truth_n by_o they_o that_o deny_v transubstantiation_n special_o see_v our_o saviour_n do_v not_o say_v here_o be_v my_o body_n which_o speech_n may_v be_v verefy_v by_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o body_n local_o within_o the_o bread_n but_o this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o import_v that_o not_o only_o his_o body_n be_v true_o and_o substantial_o present_a but_o also_o that_o it_o be_v the_o substance_n contain_v immediate_o under_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n answer_n first_o if_o a_o substance_n be_v either_o by_o nature_n humane_a custom_n or_o divine_a ordination_n appoint_v to_o contain_v another_o substance_n then_o demonstrate_v the_o external_a substance_n which_o contain_v we_o may_v signify_v the_o hide_a substance_n contain_v verborum_fw-la but_o according_a to_o that_o tenet_n which_o maintain_v consubstantiation_n the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v by_o divine_a ordination_n appoint_v to_o contain_v the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n therefore_o demonstrate_v by_o word_n the_o substance_n of_o bread_n one_o may_v signify_v the_o hide_a substance_n which_o be_v christ_n body_n second_o scotus_n 3._o durand_n 14._o and_o paludanus_n 4._o affirm_v that_o although_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n remain_v yet_o because_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v also_o present_a it_o may_v true_o and_o proper_o be_v say_v by_o our_o saviour_n this_o be_v my_o body_n now_o if_o such_o profound_a schoolman_n have_v weigh_v the_o jesuit_n objection_n &_o do_v find_v the_o same_o light_n the_o propugnor_n of_o consubstantiation_n have_v small_a reason_n to_o regard_v it_o three_o the_o former_a objection_n be_v nothing_o to_o we_o which_o maintain_v a_o true_a mystical_a presence_n censerentur_fw-la of_o christ_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n and_o refuse_v both_o transubstantiation_n and_o consubstantiation_n for_o we_o believe_v and_o be_v able_a to_o demonstrate_v that_o our_o saviour_n word_n be_v figurative_a in_o part_n and_o yet_o the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v real_o and_o very_o communicate_v accipit_fw-la according_a to_o the_o manner_n former_o declare_v pag._n 405._o jesuit_fw-la if_o any_o man_n say_v that_o by_o this_o argument_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o express_v in_o scripture_n but_o from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o jnstitution_n subtle_o deduce_v and_o so_o may_v perchance_o be_v number_v inter_fw-la scita_fw-la scholae_fw-la not_o inter_fw-la dogmata_fw-la fidei_fw-la i_o answer_v that_o the_o consequence_n of_o this_o argument_n be_v not_o good_a as_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o example_n of_o the_o incarnation_n the_o doctrine_n that_o the_o union_n of_o nature_n in_o christ_n be_v proper_a not_o metaphorical_a substantial_a not_o accidental_a personal_a not_o essential_a be_v no_o where_o express_o set_v down_o by_o scripture_n but_o by_o subtle_a deduction_n infer_v from_o the_o mystery_n which_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n deliver_v notwithstanding_o because_o these_o subtle_a deduction_n be_v propose_v by_o the_o church_n as_o pertinent_a unto_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o foresay_a mystery_n they_o can_v be_v deny_v without_o prejudice_n of_o faith_n in_o this_o sort_n the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n though_o not_o in_o term_n deliver_v by_o the_o scripture_n but_o deduce_v by_o subtle_a and_o speculative_a inference_n may_v not_o be_v deny_v by_o they_o that_o will_v be_v perfect_a believer_n because_o the_o church_n have_v declare_v the_o same_o to_o pertain_v to_o 3_o the_o proper_a sense_n of_o christ_n his_o word_n and_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n answer_n i_o know_v at_o who_o you_o glance_v ponimus_fw-la when_o you_o say_v inter_fw-la scita_fw-la scholae_fw-la but_o your_o solution_n from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o incarnation_n be_v not_o level_a to_o the_o scope_n for_o illation_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n some_o be_v immediate_a formal_a necessary_a evident_a and_o illustrious_a to_o wit_n christ_n jesus_n be_v a_o true_a and_o perfect_a man_n therefore_o he_o have_v a_o humane_a will_n some_o be_v obscure_a contingent_a remote_a and_o sophistical_a to_o wit_n christ_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n ergo_fw-la the_o consecrate_v host_n be_v christ_n substantial_a body_n by_o transubstantiation_n christ_n say_v do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o ergo_fw-la he_o make_v his_o disciple_n sacrifice_v priest_n that_o which_o be_v derive_v from_o scripture_n the_o first_o way_n be_v doctrine_n of_o faith_n that_o which_o be_v infer_v the_o other_o way_n may_v be_v loose_a uncertain_a infirm_a and_o many_o time_n ridiculous_a and_o apparent_o false_a now_o let_v i_o entreat_v you_o until_o you_o prove_v your_o deduction_n necessary_a to_o rank_n your_o popish_a mass_n and_o transubstantiation_n among_o this_o latter_a kind_n of_o derivative_a article_n neither_o can_v the_o swell_a usurpation_n of_o romish_a prelate_n which_o you_o style_v the_o church_n make_v every_o subtle_a speculation_n of_o schoolman_n necessarium_fw-la and_o nice_a figment_n of_o humane_a wisdom_n constant_a a_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n any_o more_o than_o a_o brag_a 〈◊〉_d can_v by_o outface_v convert_v copper_n into_o gold_n for_o article_n of_o faith_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o be_v such_o only_a from_o their_o form_n and_o original_a cause_n as_o for_o your_o roman_a synod_n of_o pope_n nicholas_n and_o your_o lateran_n under_o innocent_a the_o three_o these_o be_v your_o own_o idol_n the_o definition_n that_o pass_v in_o they_o be_v the_o breath_n of_o the_o pope_n nostril_n and_o therefore_o why_o be_v you_o so_o fantastical_a as_o to_o enamel_n they_o with_o the_o title_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o in_o one_o of_o these_o conventicle_n your_o pope_n have_v so_o rude_o and_o gross_o atteri_fw-la determine_v the_o question_n of_o real_a presence_n that_o romist_n 3._o themselves_o be_v now_o ashamed_a and_o force_v to_o gloss_n and_o strain_a exposition_n to_o metamorphize_v and_o new_a mould_n those_o undigested_a crudity_n jesuit_fw-la jesuit_o 3._o transubstantiation_n be_v teach_v by_o the_o father_n it_o be_v certain_a the_o father_n acknowledge_v a_o transmutation_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o they_o mean_v transubstantiation_n that_o be_v not_o only_o a_o mystical_a and_o significative_a but_o also_o a_o real_a and_o substantial_a change_n appear_v by_o these_o five_o circumstance_n of_o their_o doctrine_n in_o this_o point_n answer_n that_o we_o may_v right_o understand_v the_o testimony_n of_o father_n allege_v in_o this_o question_n we_o be_v in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o examine_v what_o transubstantiation_n be_v according_a to_o papalls_n the_o trident_n council_n say_v praeexistentem_fw-la it_o be_v a_o conversion_n of_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n wrought_v by_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n first_o by_o the_o whole_a substance_n they_o understand_v the_o whole_a substantial_a matter_n and_o form_n 10._o second_o they_o affirm_v that_o the_o whole_a substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v destroy_v corruptio_fw-la or_o cease_v to_o be_v three_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v place_v under_o the_o accidental_a shape_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n four_o by_o the_o force_n of_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n cease_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n acquire_v a_o new_a manner_n of_o be_v productivam_fw-la under_o the_o external_a form_n differ_v from_o his_o be_v in_o heaven_n five_o the_o shape_n and_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n subsist_v censeantur_fw-la without_o any_o material_a subject_n of_o inherencie_n and_o affect_v the_o sense_n and_o nourish_v docent_fw-la in_o like_a manner_n as_o former_o they_o do_v this_o doctrine_n of_o popish_a transubstantiation_n be_v new_a according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o many_o learned_a schoolman_n recedere_fw-la and_o the_o primitive_a father_n never_o teach_v the_o same_o for_o many_o of_o they_o maintain_v express_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v and_o none_o of_o they_o affirm_v either_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v place_v under_o the_o naked_a form_n and_o shape_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n or_o that_o the_o accident_n have_v no_o material_a subject_n of_o inherencie_n or_o that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n acquire_v a_o new_a be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n differ_v from_o that_o which_o they_o have_v
the_o room_n or_o seat_n of_o another_o be_v not_o substantial_a conversion_n aliam_fw-la but_o alteration_n of_o place_n jesuit_fw-la saint_n chrysostome_n when_o wax_n be_v put_v into_o fire_n nothing_o encaen_fw-la of_o the_o substance_n thereof_o be_v leave_v nothing_o remain_v unconsume_v so_o likewise_o do_v thou_o think_v that_o the_o mystery_n be_v consume_v by_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ._n answer_n this_o father_n substantia_fw-la say_v not_o that_o nothing_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v leave_v but_o clean_o contrary_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nothing_o of_o the_o substance_n go_v away_o and_o the_o word_n which_o follow_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v false_o translate_v for_o they_o be_v not_o be_v consume_v by_o the_o substance_n but_o be_v coabsume_v with_o the_o substance_n also_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v not_o consume_v by_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o the_o tenet_n of_o many_o schoolman_n destruat_fw-la the_o substance_n of_o the_o external_a element_n pass_v into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o receiver_n and_o be_v consume_v or_o unite_v to_o the_o flesh_n of_o the_o receiver_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n represent_v by_o the_o same_o and_o receive_v by_o faith_n nourish_v the_o soul_n to_o life_n eternal_a john_n 6._o 54._o and_o if_o our_o adversary_n follow_v their_o own_o translation_n will_v expound_v saint_n chrysostome_n literal_o than_o communicant_n receive_v christ_n body_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o seraphim_n 〈◊〉_d and_o not_o by_o the_o priest_n hand_n jesuit_fw-la s._n ambrose_n what_o argument_n shall_v we_o bring_v to_o prove_v 9_o that_o in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o the_o thing_n which_o nature_n have_v mutatur_fw-la frame_v but_o that_o thing_n which_o benediction_n have_v consecrate_v and_o that_o great_a be_v the_o force_n of_o benediction_n than_o of_o nature_n see_v by_o the_o benediction_n even_o nature_n be_v change_v answer_n the_o quantity_n and_o accident_n of_o the_o outward_a sign_n be_v frame_v by_o nature_n as_o well_o as_o the_o substance_n and_o the_o force_n of_o consecration_n and_o benediction_n pass_v upon_o the_o one_o as_o well_o as_o upon_o the_o other_o and_o therefore_o the_o change_n of_o nature_n which_o saint_n ambrose_n intend_v be_v not_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o element_n commutentur_fw-la and_o the_o conversion_n thereof_o into_o another_o substance_n but_o the_o elevate_n of_o these_o earthly_a creature_n to_o be_v mystery_n of_o grace_n and_o holy_a instrument_n to_o apply_v and_o communicate_v that_o which_o be_v represent_v by_o they_o naturae_fw-la it_o be_v inconsequent_a to_o argue_v they_o be_v change_v in_o their_o nature_n ergo_fw-la their_o natural_a substance_n be_v destroy_v for_o nature_n imply_v quality_n natura_n and_o property_n as_o well_o as_o substance_n and_o it_o be_v take_v theologicè_fw-la as_o well_o as_o physicè_fw-la for_o s._n peter_n speak_v of_o regenerate_a person_n 2._o pet._n 1._o v._n 4._o say_v they_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o yet_o his_o meaning_n be_v not_o that_o their_o former_a substance_n be_v abolish_v the_o nature_n of_o glorify_a body_n be_v change_v and_o they_o be_v make_v spiritual_a 1._o cor._n 15._o 44._o and_o yet_o they_o retain_v the_o same_o substance_n man_n nature_n be_v change_v after_o his_o fall_n ephes._n 2._o 3._o yet_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o nature_n remain_v saint_n ambrose_n himself_o say_v that_o in_o baptism_n man_n be_v change_v and_o make_v a_o new_a creature_n and_o treat_v far_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n he_o say_v learn_v how_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n be_v accustom_v to_o change_v every_o creature_n and_o when_o he_o will_v he_o alter_v the_o course_n of_o nature_n jesuit_fw-la second_o they_o require_v that_o the_o author_n that_o change_v bread_n into_o christ_n his_o body_n be_v omnipotent_a and_o consequent_o the_o change_n not_o mere_o significative_a but_o substantial_a s._n cyprian_n this_o bread_n change_v not_o in_o shape_n mystagog_n but_o in_o nature_n by_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n s._n cyrill_n he_o that_o in_o the_o marriage_n of_o cana_n change_v water_n into_o wine_n by_o his_o only_a will_n be_v not_o he_o worthy_a that_o we_o believe_v he_o that_o he_o have_v change_v wine_n into_o his_o blood_n s._n gaudentius_n the_o lord_n and_o creator_n exod._n of_o nature_n that_o of_o earth_n make_v bread_n again_o because_o he_o can_v do_v it_o and_o have_v promise_v to_o do_v it_o make_v of_o bread_n his_o own_o body_n and_o he_o that_o of_o water_n make_v wine_n now_o of_o wine_n have_v make_v his_o blood_n answer_n s._n cyprian_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n de_fw-fr coena_fw-la domini_fw-la so_o bellarmine_n 6._o confess_v and_o before_o he_o johannes_n hessel_n 62_o but_o in_o some_o copy_n it_o pass_v under_o the_o name_n of_o arnoldus_fw-la who_o live_v many_o age_n after_o cyprian_a and_o yet_o in_o one_o part_n of_o that_o work_n d._n unctione_n chrysmatis_n 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v a_o manifest_a place_n against_o transubstantiation_n our_o lord_n say_v he_o in_o the_o table_n wherein_o he_o banquet_v with_o his_o disciple_n with_o his_o own_o hand_n deliver_v bread_n and_o wine_n etc._n etc._n declare_v also_o how_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o the_o thing_n signify_v be_v call_v by_o the_o same_o name_n second_o to_o a_o mystical_a change_n the_o omnipotent_a power_n of_o god_n be_v necessary_a as_o appear_v in_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n effectum_fw-la and_o earthly_a creature_n can_v be_v instrument_n of_o grace_n or_o mean_n to_o communicate_v spiritual_a or_o miraculous_a benefit_n without_o the_o same_o as_o appear_z in_o the_o water_n of_o jordan_n 2._o reg._n 5._o and_o in_o the_o pool_n of_o bethesda_n joh._n 5._o therefore_o although_o some_o do_v require_v a_o omnipotent_a power_n to_o elevate_v and_o change_v the_o creature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o they_o maintain_v transubstantiation_n three_o the_o author_n essentia_fw-la by_o the_o word_n natura_fw-la mutatus_fw-la change_v in_o nature_n understand_v not_o a_o corporal_a change_n for_o in_o the_o same_o sentence_n he_o declare_v himself_o by_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n humanity_n which_o be_v personal_o unite_v to_o the_o deity_n be_v change_v but_o not_o so_o as_o that_o it_o lose_v his_o natural_a form_n and_o substance_n and_o in_o the_o same_o book_n this_o father_n faith_n praesentiam_fw-la that_o although_o the_o immortal_a food_n deliver_v in_o the_o eucharist_n differ_v from_o common_a meat_n yet_o it_o retain_v in_o the_o kind_n of_o corporal_a substance_n he_o say_v not_o species_n in_o the_o plural_a number_n meaning_n according_a to_o the_o new_a popish_a sense_n the_o external_a shape_n and_o accident_n for_o let_v the_o adversary_n prove_v out_o of_o antiquity_n that_o s._n cyprian_n or_o the_o primative_a church_n maintain_v the_o late_a romish_a doctrine_n concern_v shape_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n without_o the_o material_a substance_n and_o we_o will_v free_o grant_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v ancient_a but_o he_o say_v speciem_fw-la the_o kind_n in_o the_o singular_a number_n that_o be_v the_o corporal_a substance_n and_o form_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n in_o which_o s._n ambrose_n 9_o use_v the_o word_n say_v ante_fw-la benedictionem_fw-la verborum_fw-la coelestium_fw-la alia_fw-la species_n nominatur_fw-la before_o the_o benediction_n of_o word_n apply_v it_o be_v call_v another_o kind_n of_o thing_n s._n cyrills_n place_n maintain_v not_o popish_a transubstantiation_n for_o in_o this_o the_o shape_n and_o accident_n remain_v and_o the_o material_a substance_n be_v corrupt_v but_o in_o our_o saviour_n miracle_n joh._n 2._o the_o shape_n accident_n and_o form_n be_v change_v and_o the_o material_a substance_n remain_v gaudentius_n say_v exod._n satis_fw-la declarat_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la suum_fw-la esse_fw-la omne_fw-la vinum_fw-la quod_fw-la in_o figura_fw-la passionis_fw-la sua_fw-la offertur_fw-la bonavent_n d._n 11._o q._n 6._o in_o 4._o scent_n omnia_fw-la verba_fw-la significantia_fw-la innovationem_fw-la circà_fw-la corp_n '_o christi_fw-la sunt_fw-la falsè_fw-la dicta_fw-la haec_fw-la est_fw-la simplicitèr_fw-la impropria_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la fit_a ne_o 〈◊〉_d pute_fw-la quod_fw-la coeleste_fw-la effectum_fw-la est_fw-la per_fw-la eum_fw-la qui_fw-la transit_fw-la in_o 〈◊〉_d nam_fw-la cum_fw-la panem_fw-la consecratum_fw-la &_o vinum_fw-la discipulis_fw-la suis_fw-la porrigerat_fw-la &c._n &c._n the_o lord_n make_v bread_n of_o his_o own_o body_n and_o he_o make_v wine_n of_o his_o blood_n and_o then_o he_o say_v further_a of_o bread_n he_o make_v his_o own_o body_n and_o of_o wine_n his_o own_o blood_n but_o he_o say_v not_o that_o this_o be_v do_v by_o transubstantiation_n for_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n be_v not_o transubstantiate_a but_o call_v the_o same_o celestial_a food_n he_o declare_v his_o meaning_n
sacrament_n about_o he_o permit_v himself_o rather_o to_o be_v bruise_v with_o stone_n to_o death_n than_o disclose_v it_o to_o the_o persecutor_n who_o when_o they_o have_v crown_v the_o martyr_n search_v serious_o for_o the_o sacrament_n in_o his_o clothes_n and_o about_o his_o dead_a body_n find_v nothing_o god_n by_o miracle_n keep_v the_o same_o out_o of_o their_o impious_a hand_n s._n cyprian_n record_v diverse_a miracle_n do_v in_o confirmation_n of_o this_o our_o saviour_n permanent_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n namely_o of_o a_o woman_n unworthy_o approach_v to_o the_o chest_n where_o the_o same_o be_v keep_v that_o be_v fright_v back_o with_o fire_n that_o thence_o flash_v out_o tanta_fw-la est_fw-la domini_fw-la potentia_fw-la say_v s._n cyprian_n tanta_fw-la maiestas_fw-la and_o so_o full_o be_v they_o persuade_v in_o this_o opinion_n that_o christ_n body_n be_v permanent_o in_o the_o sacrament_n that_o cyril_n calosyr_n dare_v say_v insaniant_fw-la qui_fw-la dicunt_fw-la benedictionem_fw-la a_o sanctificatione_n cessare_fw-la si_fw-la quae_fw-la reliquiae_fw-la remanserunt_fw-la eius_fw-la in_o sequentem_fw-la diem_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la mutabitur_fw-la sacrosanctum_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la sed_fw-la virtus_fw-la benedictionis_fw-la &_o vivificativa_fw-la gratia_fw-la iugis_fw-la in_o eo_fw-la est_fw-la now_o what_o reason_n can_v the_o father_n have_v thus_o constant_o to_o defend_v this_o continuancy_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o that_o they_o believe_v bread_n to_o be_v change_v into_o his_o body_n remain_v demonstrable_a by_o the_o form_n and_o accidence_n thereof_o so_o long_o as_o they_o remain_v entire_a and_o be_v not_o change_v into_o the_o accidence_n of_o some_o other_o substance_n answer_n your_o objection_n reduce_v to_o form_n of_o argument_n be_v all_o they_o which_o use_v reservation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o maintain_v continuancie_n of_o christ_n body_n therein_o believe_v transubstantiation_n the_o ancient_a father_n use_v reservation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o maintain_v continuancie_n of_o christ_n body_n therein_o ergo_fw-la the_o ancient_a father_n believe_v transubstantiation_n if_o the_o argument_n be_v thus_o form_v first_o the_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v deny_v for_o the_o father_n may_v use_v reservation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o believe_v the_o permanencie_n of_o christ_n body_n therein_o upon_o the_o tenet_n of_o real_a presence_n by_o consubstantiation_n and_o not_o upon_o belief_n of_o transubstantiation_n second_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o ancient_a father_n general_o or_o universal_o use_v not_o reservation_n of_o the_o sacramental_a sign_n 69._o and_o justin_n martyr_n 2._o and_o ireneus_fw-la 24._o speak_v only_o of_o the_o send_n of_o the_o sacrament_n from_o the_o church_n where_o it_o be_v administer_v to_o sick_a person_n and_o stranger_n some_o example_n of_o reservation_n proceed_v upon_o the_o ignorance_n and_o superstition_n of_o private_a person_n lapsis_fw-la in_o which_o case_n although_o some_o father_n use_v connivance_n yet_o these_o abuse_n be_v afterward_o reform_v 3._o the_o minor_a therefore_o if_o it_o be_v general_a be_v deny_v and_o if_o it_o be_v particular_a than_o the_o mayor_n and_o minor_n infer_v not_o the_o conclusion_n because_o that_o which_o be_v do_v by_o some_o upon_o private_a opinion_n and_o in_o another_o kind_n or_o manner_n than_o romist_n do_v at_o this_o day_n and_o be_v also_o oppose_v and_o correct_v by_o other_o can_v be_v a_o matter_n of_o catholic_a doctrine_n or_o practice_v but_o this_o question_n of_o reservation_n have_v be_v large_o handle_v by_o many_o of_o our_o part_n and_o whatsoever_o romist_n have_v object_v concern_v the_o same_o be_v full_o answer_v 550._o and_o therefore_o because_o this_o jesuit_n produce_v no_o new_a matter_n but_o only_o repeat_v what_o we_o have_v former_o confute_v and_o especial_o because_o reservation_n conclude_v not_o transubstantiation_n which_o be_v the_o matter_n now_o in_o question_n i_o forbear_v further_a examination_n of_o the_o particular_a testimony_n produce_v by_o he_o jesuit_fw-la against_o this_o consent_n of_o father_n protestant_n object_v the_o testimony_n of_o theodoret_n and_o gelasius_n who_o in_o plain_a term_n affirm_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v in_o this_o holy_a eucharist_n bring_v this_o as_o a_o example_n of_o the_o incarnation_n where_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o man_n remain_v in_o christ_n signa_fw-la mystica_fw-la say_v theodoret_n inconfusus_fw-la post_fw-la sanctificationem_fw-la non_fw-la recedunt_fw-la à_fw-la sua_fw-la natura_fw-la and_o gelasius_n non_fw-la esse_fw-la desinit_fw-la substantia_fw-la vel_fw-la natura_fw-la panis_n eutichet_n &_o vini_n i_o answer_v that_o these_o father_n by_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n understand_v the_o natural_a quality_n that_o flow_v from_o the_o nature_n and_o essence_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o ordinary_o and_o in_o common_a speech_n the_o natural_a accident_n and_o propriety_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v term_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n thus_o we_o say_v that_o to_o be_v heavy_a and_o to_o fall_v downward_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o stone_n to_o be_v hot_a and_o to_o burn_v be_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o fire_n which_o yet_o be_v but_o natural_a quality_n and_o property_n of_o stone_n and_o fire_n by_o this_o or_o rather_o by_o a_o more_o strange_a manner_n of_o speech_n s._n theodote_n bishop_n 9_o of_o ancyra_n to_o explicate_v against_o nestorius_n and_o eutyches_n the_o conjunction_n of_o two_o nature_n in_o one_o person_n by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o water_n that_o moses_n convert_v into_o blood_n say_v that_o the_o water_n be_v not_o change_v in_o nature_n nor_o do_v cease_v to_o be_v water_n which_o in_o rigour_n of_o speech_n take_v the_o nature_n of_o water_n for_o the_o substance_n thereof_o as_o condistinct_a from_o the_o natural_a quality_n be_v not_o true_a but_o because_o water_v change_v into_o blood_n remain_v according_a to_o some_o natural_a quality_n and_o property_n which_o it_o have_v common_a with_o blood_n as_o moisture_n liquidnesse_n and_o the_o like_a he_o the_o better_a to_o sit_v and_o accommodate_v the_o similitude_n say_v the_o water_n remain_v according_a to_o the_o nature_n that_o be_v according_a to_o some_o natural_a quality_n thereof_o for_o these_o father_n bring_v those_o similitude_n to_o declare_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n against_o the_o heresy_n of_o eutyches_n who_o deny_v the_o natural_a quality_n and_o property_n of_o the_o two_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o man_n to_o remain_v distinct_a in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n which_o error_n they_o reject_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o eucharist_n where_o the_o natural_a quality_n of_o bread_n remain_v together_o with_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o same_o sacrament_n which_o natural_a quality_n of_o bread_n they_o term_v the_o nature_n of_o bread_n as_o in_o some_o sense_n they_o may_v be_v term_v to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o phrase_n of_o two_o distinct_a nature_n remain_v may_v seem_v common_a to_o the_o mystery_n of_o both_o the_o incarnation_n and_o eucharist_n and_o so_o the_o similitude_n seem_v more_o fit_a and_o proper_a though_o the_o father_n know_v well_o that_o the_o phrase_n do_v not_o agree_v to_o both_o mystery_n equal_o in_o the_o same_o sense_n which_o obscure_a utter_v his_o mind_n be_v the_o less_o to_o be_v wonder_v at_o in_o theodoret_n because_o he_o do_v profess_v in_o that_o place_n not_o to_o speak_v plain_o as_o fear_v that_o some_o infidel_n or_o catechume_n be_v present_a to_o who_o the_o mystery_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v reveal_v non_fw-la oportet_fw-la say_v he_o aperte_fw-la dicere_fw-la est_fw-la enim_fw-la veresimile_n adesse_fw-la aliquos_fw-la non_fw-la initiatos_fw-la much_o less_o cause_n have_v they_o to_o stand_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n quod_fw-la videtur_fw-la in_o altari_fw-la panis_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la etiam_fw-la occuli_fw-la renunciant_fw-la quod_fw-la autem_fw-la fides_fw-la postulat_fw-la panis_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la for_o the_o sense_n be_v that_o consecrate_a bread_n be_v bread_n in_o outward_a appearance_n and_o the_o natural_a accidence_n of_o bread_n true_o remain_v as_o the_o eye_n do_v witness_v but_o inward_o and_o according_a to_o the_o substance_n it_o be_v not_o bread_n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o faith_n require_v we_o believe_v and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o these_o word_n be_v not_o extant_a in_o the_o work_n of_o s._n augustine_n but_o allege_v by_o venerable_a bede_n a_o follower_n of_o s._n augustine_n doctrine_n and_o so_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a they_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v but_o as_o bede_n understand_v they_o who_o set_v down_o his_o mind_n in_o these_o word_n the_o form_n of_o bread_n be_v see_v but_o the_o substance_n 2._o of_o bread_n be_v not_o there_o nor_o any_o other_o bread_n but_o only_o that_o bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n answer_n demonstration_n have_v large_o be_v make_v by_o our_o part_n that_o
luc._n 22.18.1_o cor._n 10.16_o &_o 11.26.27.28_o second_o the_o same_o affirm_v not_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v abolish_v three_o natural_a reason_n show_v that_o accident_n must_v have_v a_o subject_n of_o inhaerencie_n and_o that_o bare_a form_n and_o shadow_n of_o thing_n can_v nourish_v without_o corporal_a substance_n four_o the_o sense_n of_o taste_n and_o feel_v discern_v apparent_o a_o corporietie_n in_o the_o element_n receive_v in_o this_o case_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n to_o imagine_v that_o our_o sense_n be_v delude_v or_o that_o god_n almighty_a by_o miracle_n work_v in_o a_o contrary_a manner_n to_o the_o course_n of_o nature_n and_o to_o that_o which_o he_o have_v otherwise_o reveal_v in_o his_o word_n it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o romist_n to_o affirm_v that_o god_n use_v a_o miraculous_a course_n in_o these_o thing_n and_o to_o palliate_v absurdity_n repugnant_a to_o sense_n reason_n and_o scripture_n under_o pretext_n of_o god_n omnipotency_n but_o they_o must_v prove_v by_o divine_a revelation_n that_o he_o will_v do_v this_o for_o god_n effect_v not_o all_o thing_n by_o his_o omnipotency_n which_o man_n may_v imagine_v to_o be_v possible_a in_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o cup_n be_v the_o new_a testament_n in_o my_o blood_n etc._n etc._n there_o be_v not_o a_o syllable_n concern_v accident_n without_o a_o subject_n or_o concern_v any_o miracle_n wrought_v in_o the_o sacrament_n by_o omnipotency_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o such_o doctrine_n elsewhere_o reveal_v and_o if_o christ_n word_n be_v expound_v figurative_o according_a to_o s._n augustine_n 12._o tertullian_n marc._n theoderit_fw-la 1._o origen_n 552._o bertram_n 305._o etc._n etc._n they_o make_v nothing_o for_o corporal_a presence_n by_o indistance_n of_o place_n and_o if_o they_o be_v understand_v literal_o they_o prove_v not_o transubstantiation_n for_o bread_n may_v be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n by_o a_o inusitate_n form_n of_o speak_v praesentiam_fw-la which_o according_a to_o the_o tenet_n of_o some_o learned_a divine_n chemnicius_n be_v no_o trope_n or_o figure_n and_o if_o neither_o of_o these_o exposition_n content_v our_o adversary_n they_o may_v have_v believe_v the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a text_n as_o they_o sound_v literal_o and_o a_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n wrought_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n without_o define_v and_o determine_v the_o express_a manner_n how_o for_o if_o they_o believe_v that_o accident_n subsist_v without_o a_o substance_n and_o nourish_v and_o be_v taste_v and_o feel_v and_o pass_v into_o the_o stomach_n extinguo_fw-la and_o yet_o be_v not_o able_a to_o express_v the_o distinct_a manner_n how_o and_o if_o they_o believe_v a_o substantial_a presence_n of_o christ_n individual_a humane_a body_n in_o many_o host_n and_o yet_o be_v unable_a to_o declare_v the_o manner_n how_o ignorat_fw-la why_o may_v they_o not_o have_v suspend_v other_o question_n concern_v the_o distinct_a manner_n of_o presence_n and_o maintain_v only_o a_o true_a and_o mystical_a presence_n the_o distinct_a manner_n whereof_o be_v incomprehensible_a in_o this_o life_n and_o not_o have_v disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n by_o define_v as_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n such_o a_o doctrine_n as_o have_v no_o foundation_n in_o divine_a revelation_n to_o make_v it_o appear_v certain_a and_o infallible_a jesvit_n 1._o consideration_n the_o first_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o supposal_n of_o two_o thing_n most_o certain_a first_o that_o the_o primitive_a church_n preach_v unto_o pagan_n jew_n and_o other_o infidel_n the_o rest_n of_o christian_a mystery_n as_o the_o trinity_n the_o incarnation_n the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n do_v most_o careful_o keep_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v from_o their_o knowledge_n the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n yea_o catechuman_n and_o novice_n be_v not_o before_o baptism_n full_o teach_v or_o instruct_v therein_o second_o the_o reason_n move_v the_o primitive_a church_n to_o be_v careful_a in_o this_o point_n be_v least_o catechuman_n and_o infidel_n be_v full_o acquaint_v with_o the_o whole_a mystery_n the_o one_o shall_v be_v scandalize_v and_o the_o other_o mock_v thereat_o hence_o it_o be_v account_v such_o a_o heinous_a offence_n that_o christian_n shall_v discover_v this_o secret_a unto_o infidel_n or_o dispute_v about_o the_o difficulty_n thereof_o in_o their_o presence_n the_o council_n of_o alexandria_n 2._o relate_v the_o crime_n of_o arian_n number_v this_o as_o one_o of_o the_o great_a they_o be_v not_o ashamed_a in_o public_a and_o as_o it_o be_v upon_o a_o scaffold_n to_o treat_v of_o the_o mystery_n before_o catechuman_n and_o which_o be_v worse_o before_o pagan_n and_o a_o little_a after_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o publish_v the_o mystery_n before_o they_o that_o be_v not_o initiate_v for_o fear_v least_o pagan_n out_o of_o ignorance_n mock_v and_o catechuman_n enter_v into_o curiosity_n be_v scandalize_v and_o again_o before_o catechuman_n and_o which_o be_v more_o before_o jew_n and_o pagan_n blaspheme_v christianity_n they_o handle_v a_o question_n about_o the_o 2._o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n s._n ambrose_n say_v to_o declare_v the_o mystery_n unto_o they_o that_o be_v catechuman_n be_v not_o tradition_n but_o prodition_n see_v by_o such_o declaration_n danger_n be_v incur_v lest_o they_o be_v diwlge_v unto_o jnfidel_n that_o will_v scoff_n at_o they_o this_o suppose_a i_o infer_v that_o the_o seem_a absur_n dity_n of_o the_o catholic_a real_a presence_n shall_v encourage_v a_o true_a christian_a mind_n to_o believe_v it_o for_o a_o true_a christian_a desire_n to_o believe_v and_o firm_o cleave_v unto_o the_o real_a presence_n that_o be_v believe_v by_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o this_o be_v a_o real_a presence_n accompany_v with_o many_o so_o seem_o gross_a absurdity_n that_o the_o church_n have_v no_o hope_n to_o satisfy_v infidel_n therein_o or_o to_o keep_v they_o from_o blaspheme_v but_o by_o conceal_v the_o mystery_n from_o they_o and_o consequent_o they_o hold_v the_o catholic_n not_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n in_o this_o point_n the_o protestant_a doctrine_n that_o make_v christ_n body_n present_v spiritual_o by_o faith_n unto_o the_o devout_a receiver_n that_o communicate_v think_v sweet_o of_o christ_n passion_n and_o death_n contain_v no_o mystery_n to_o be_v conceal_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o seem_a absurdity_n answer_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o father_n heathen_n jew_n and_o heretic_n may_v enter_v into_o the_o church_n and_o hear_v the_o public_a sermon_n and_o preach_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n 2._o and_o infidel_n may_v read_v the_o book_n and_o tractate_v of_o the_o father_n but_o the_o father_n in_o their_o sermon_n to_o the_o people_n and_o also_o in_o their_o write_a book_n deliver_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a mystery_n as_o appear_v by_o ireneus_fw-la justin_n martyr_n s._n cyprian_n gregory_n nissen_n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n s._n chrysostome_n s._n augustine_n s._n ambrose_n etc._n etc._n neither_o be_v it_o apparent_a that_o the_o say_v father_n teach_v any_o other_o secret_a doctrine_n touch_v the_o holy_a mystery_n than_o such_o as_o they_o preach_v in_o their_o homily_n and_o pen_v in_o their_o book_n and_o therefore_o these_o homily_n and_o book_n be_v public_a it_o appear_v not_o that_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v more_o careful_a to_o conceal_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o eucharist_n than_o of_o baptism_n or_o of_o the_o trinity_n the_o objection_n out_o of_o athanasius_n and_o s._n ambrose_n show_v that_o it_o be_v hold_v unlawful_a in_o those_o age_n to_o treat_v or_o dispute_v of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n intempestiuè_fw-fr that_o be_v before_o heathen_n which_o be_v not_o at_o all_o instruct_v in_o the_o first_o principle_n of_o religion_n or_o to_o treat_v of_o this_o doctrine_n in_o profane_a place_n or_o auditory_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o transubstantiation_n for_o it_o be_v hold_v unlawful_a in_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o manner_n aforesaid_a that_o be_v in_o a_o undue_a time_n order_n &_o place_n to_o treat_v or_o dispute_v of_o the_o mystery_n of_o baptism_n or_o of_o other_o profound_a mystery_n belong_v to_o christian_a faith_n est_fw-la also_o if_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o some_o ancient_a father_n believe_v a_o real_a presence_n do_v therefore_o conceal_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n ratione_fw-la scandali_fw-la because_o of_o offence_n of_o infidel_n arise_v upon_o many_o difficulty_n and_o seem_a contradiction_n to_o sense_n and_o common_a reason_n it_o follow_v not_o from_o hence_o that_o those_o father_n believe_v popish_a transubstantiation_n for_o many_o difficulty_n and_o repugnance_n to_o sense_n and_o common_a reason_n be_v find_v in_o consubstantiation_n as_o well_o as_o in_o transubstantiation_n and_o sundry_a place_n of_o the_o father_n may_v with_o more_o
at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n to_o justify_v our_o not_o believe_v any_o part_n of_o god_n word_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o seem_a absurdity_n thereof_o answer_n you_o be_v not_o able_a to_o demonstrate_v that_o god_n will_v have_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o whole_a organical_a body_n of_o christ_n have_v the_o stature_n quantity_n and_o magnitude_n of_o a_o perfect_a man_n body_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o compass_n of_o a_o small_a host_n or_o in_o a_o crumb_n of_o bread_n for_o that_o christ_n jesus_n have_v a_o true_a and_o perfect_a body_n differ_v in_o kind_n from_o a_o spirit_n from_o a_o angel_n and_o from_o a_o immaterial_a substance_n divine_a revelation_n teach_v but_o that_o the_o same_o individual_a and_o corporeal_a substance_n partake_v the_o spiritual_a manner_n of_o angelical_a existence_n and_o the_o divine_a immensity_n simplicity_n and_o omnipresence_n as_o bellarmine_n 4._o affirm_v be_v not_o reveil_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n neither_o can_v the_o same_o be_v infer_v ex_fw-la revelatis_fw-la from_o any_o plain_a and_o evident_a truth_n which_o god_n have_v reveal_v creditorum_fw-la neither_o be_v it_o reveal_v that_o the_o abstract_a form_n and_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n subsist_v or_o be_v taste_v and_o feel_v or_o nourish_v the_o body_n and_o be_v afterward_o corrupt_v according_a to_o the_o manner_n of_o corporeal_a food_n have_v no_o substantial_a or_o material_a nature_n in_o they_o therefore_o this_o large_a tract_n wherein_o the_o obiectour_n labour_v to_o prove_v a_o possibility_n of_o the_o former_a by_o divine_a miracle_n and_o omnipotency_n be_v unworthy_a our_o examination_n for_o we_o make_v no_o question_n of_o god_n omnipotent_a power_n in_o effect_v whatsoever_o himself_o please_v as_o have_v be_v former_o answer_v pag._n 181._o yet_o the_o father_n 26._o and_o schoolman_n very_o well_o potentiae_fw-la teach_v we_o that_o such_o thing_n as_o imply_v a_o contradiction_n and_o falsity_n be_v not_o the_o object_n of_o divine_a power_n and_o they_o teach_v we_o further_o that_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a power_n in_o god_n ordinata_fw-la &_o absoluta_fw-la habet_fw-la one_o according_a to_o the_o order_n which_o himself_o have_v fix_v by_o his_o word_n and_o will_n the_o other_o according_a to_o the_o infiniteness_n of_o his_o essence_n and_o which_o exceed_v his_o will_n now_o according_a to_o the_o power_n of_o god_n measure_v and_o regulate_v by_o his_o word_n and_o will_n all_o thing_n be_v impossible_a which_o god_n will_v not_o have_v to_o be_v and_o thus_o we_o say_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v in_o one_o crumb_n of_o bread_n or_o substantial_o present_a in_o many_o place_n at_o one_o instant_a and_o accident_n can_v subsist_v or_o be_v taste_v feel_v and_o nourish_v and_o be_v convert_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o man_n body_n without_o a_o material_a subject_n of_o inherencie_n to_o sustain_v and_o give_v force_n unto_o they_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a we_o dispute_v not_o what_o god_n be_v able_a to_o effect_v by_o his_o absolute_a power_n neither_o be_v this_o question_n of_o any_o use_n in_o the_o matter_n now_o in_o hand_n for_o the_o natural_a kind_n of_o the_o thing_n themselves_o create_v by_o god_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v we_o what_o be_v the_o reveal_v will_n of_o god_n but_o that_o he_o change_v this_o ordinance_n which_o himself_o have_v fix_v no_o divine_a testimony_n or_o revelation_n affirm_v or_o teach_v the_o sole_a pretext_n which_o papal_v have_v to_o palliate_v the_o absurdity_n pursue_v transubstantiation_n at_o the_o heel_n be_v the_o word_n of_o institution_n but_o there_o be_v nothing_o coactive_a in_o the_o say_a word_n to_o prove_v this_o romish_a article_n by_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o best_a learned_a papist_n as_o i_o have_v former_o prove_v pag._n 414._o and_o beside_o many_o other_o reason_n this_o argument_n out_o of_o our_o saviour_n word_n be_v most_o strong_a against_o transubstantiation_n if_o nothing_o be_v find_v in_o our_o saviour_n word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o prove_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n into_o christ_n body_n more_o than_o which_o be_v likewise_o find_v to_o change_v the_o quantity_n and_o accident_n then_o popish_a transubstantiation_n be_v only_o a_o conversion_n of_o substance_n and_o not_o of_o quantity_n and_o accident_n can_v be_v conclude_v out_o of_o our_o saviour_n word_n but_o nothing_o be_v find_v in_o our_o saviour_n word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n etc._n etc._n prove_v any_o more_o the_o conversion_n of_o substance_n than_o of_o quantity_n and_o accident_n for_o our_o saviour_n take_v the_o whole_a bread_n both_o according_a to_o the_o substance_n and_o also_o according_a to_o the_o quantity_n and_o accident_n thereof_o into_o his_o hand_n and_o bless_a and_o consecrate_v the_o same_o entire_o with_o the_o like_a thanksgiving_n and_o pronunciation_n of_o word_n and_o perform_v all_o thing_n to_o the_o one_o as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o other_o therefore_o if_o our_o saviour_n word_n prove_v transubstantiation_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n they_o must_v likewise_o prove_v conversion_n of_o the_o quantity_n and_o accident_n into_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n but_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o papal_o they_o do_v not_o the_o latter_a for_o the_o quantity_n and_o accident_n be_v not_o convert_v into_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o consequent_o they_o do_v not_o the_o former_a now_o this_o be_v apparent_a the_o popish_a doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n have_v no_o foundation_n in_o our_o saviour_n word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n etc._n etc._n i_o supersede_n therefore_o to_o examine_v the_o obiector_n particular_a argument_n among_o which_o one_o be_v learned_o borrow_v from_o the_o fly_v wing_n which_o according_a to_o romish_a philosophy_n may_v be_v thinned_a extend_a and_o enlarge_v to_o make_v a_o case_n such_o perhaps_o as_o base_a viol_n have_v to_o put_v the_o whole_a world_n into_o every_o puny_a in_o our_o university_n can_v distinguish_v between_o mathematical_a or_o potential_a division_n of_o a_o body_n and_o physical_a or_o actual_a aristotle_n himself_o teach_v we_o that_o there_o be_v minima_fw-la caro_fw-la though_o there_o be_v not_o corpus_fw-la minimum_fw-la but_o this_o fictious_a cosmotecture_n and_o case_n may_v well_o be_v paraled_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o they_o be_v twin_n the_o one_o as_o credible_a and_o infallible_a in_o theology_n as_o the_o other_o in_o philosophy_n but_o if_o our_o adversary_n will_v be_v please_v to_o respite_v we_o from_o believe_v transubstantiation_n as_o a_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n until_o his_o vast_a word_n cap-case_n make_v of_o a_o fly_v wing_n be_v finish_v he_o shall_v find_v we_o more_o flexible_a and_o prone_a to_o credit_n his_o romish_a doctrine_n in_o this_o and_o other_o article_n jesuit_fw-la second_o we_o can_v imagine_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v real_o combine_v unto_o the_o consecrate_a form_n and_o not_o to_o be_v pollute_v by_o such_o indignity_n as_o may_v happen_v unto_o the_o form_n yet_o we_o have_v see_v or_o may_v see_v thing_n able_a to_o make_v this_o not_o to_o seem_v incredible_a for_o holy_a man_n often_o by_o prayer_n so_o purify_v their_o soul_n and_o by_o contemplation_n bring_v their_o spirit_n to_o such_o a_o independency_n of_o their_o sense_n that_o neither_o bitter_a meat_n offend_v their_o taste_n nor_o loathsome_a scent_n their_o smell_n nor_o shrill_a cry_n their_o hear_n yea_o burn_n and_o torturing_n be_v not_o perceive_v their_o spirit_n be_v eloyn_v through_o divine_a unpolluted_a affection_n from_o the_o contagion_n of_o the_o body_n unto_o the_o substance_n whereof_o it_o still_o remain_v most_o real_o unite_v this_o be_v so_o can_v the_o glorious_a body_n of_o christ_n grace_v with_o most_o divine_a ornament_n flow_v from_o the_o excessive_a bliss_n of_o the_o soul_n make_v spiritual_a impassable_a and_o insearchable_a be_v real_o present_a unto_o the_o form_n of_o consecrate_a bread_n and_o yet_o free_a immune_a and_o whole_o independent_a of_o any_o contagion_n or_o corruption_n that_o may_v happen_v to_o those_o form_n especial_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n not_o be_v so_o strict_o and_o substantial_o tie_v unto_o the_o form_n as_o the_o spirit_n be_v to_o the_o body_n it_o inform_v but_o be_v present_a unto_o they_o as_o a_o angel_n assistant_n be_v to_o the_o body_n wherein_o he_o work_v what_o dishonour_n can_v it_o be_v to_o attribute_v to_o christ_n most_o venerable_a body_n this_o spiritual_a manner_n of_o angelical_a presence_n yea_o rather_o a_o participation_n of_o the_o divine_a immensity_n for_o as_o god_n by_o his_o incomprehensible_a immensity_n exist_v every_o where_o no_o less_o pure_a in_o the_o sink_n than_o in_o the_o sun_n no_o less_o sweet_a in_o the_o dunghill_n than_o in_o a_o garden_n of_o odoriferous_a
kernel_n of_o a_o apple_n a_o great_a tree_n may_v be_v make_v and_o nourish_v by_o the_o force_n and_o vigour_n proceed_v from_o the_o same_o do_v not_o we_o see_v by_o daily_a experience_n the_o same_o to_o be_v true_a that_o ash_n may_v be_v make_v of_o glass_n that_o stone_n in_o the_o stomach_n of_o a_o dove_n iron_n in_o the_o belly_n of_o a_o ostrich_n be_v turn_v into_o flesh_n that_o of_o a_o rot_a bark_n of_o a_o tree_n fall_v into_o the_o water_n shall_v be_v breed_v and_o produce_v a_o perfect_a bird_n to_o i_o seem_v more_o incredible_a than_o that_o god_n shall_v make_v the_o accident_n of_o bread_n separate_v from_o their_o substance_n to_o nourish_v man_n body_n for_o the_o dead_a bark_n of_o a_o tree_n may_v seem_v to_o have_v no_o more_o efficacy_n of_o itself_o to_o produce_v a_o live_a creature_n special_o so_o perfect_a a_o bird_n as_o barnacle_n than_o have_v the_o accident_n of_o bread_n to_o feed_v and_o breed_v the_o flesh_n of_o a_o live_a man_n yea_o many_o philosopher_n teach_v and_o in_o my_o judgement_n convince_v that_o in_o substantial_a generation_n where_o no_o cause_n coequal_a in_o perfection_n to_o the_o effect_n produce_v be_v present_a god_n by_o his_o omnipotency_n do_v supply_v deficiency_n of_o natural_a cause_n why_o then_o shall_v any_o man_n so_o much_o mislike_v our_o doctrine_n that_o in_o this_o mystery_n where_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n want_v god_n by_o the_o secret_a operation_n of_o his_o power_n supply_v the_o defect_n thereof_o see_v by_o the_o opinion_n of_o many_o learned_a philosopher_n his_o providence_n by_o the_o like_a secret_a special_a work_a do_v ordinary_o daily_o and_o hourly_o supply_v the_o manifold_a defect_n of_o substantial_a secondary_a agent_n neither_o be_v the_o manner_n how_o god_n can_v do_v this_o difsicile_a to_o explicate_v for_o he_o may_v enable_v the_o quantity_n of_o bread_n to_o receive_v and_o sustain_v the_o work_n of_o man_n nutritive_a power_n and_o when_o in_o that_o quantity_n there_o be_v the_o last_o accidental_a disposition_n to_o the_o form_n of_o flesh_n he_o can_v secret_o produce_v again_o materiam_fw-la primam_fw-la that_o be_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o combine_v the_o same_o with_o the_o prepare_a quantity_n and_o the_o substantial_a form_n of_o flesh_n what_o reason_n be_v there_o why_o god_n may_v not_o do_v this_o yea_o do_v it_o soon_o than_o we_o speak_v it_o wherefore_o the_o seem_a absurdity_n of_o this_o mystery_n be_v as_o i_o have_v show_v mere_o imaginary_a and_o not_o like_o those_o against_o the_o trinity_n and_o the_o incarnation_n wherein_o not_o so_o much_o imagination_n as_o reason_n find_v difficulty_n it_o be_v the_o part_n not_o only_o of_o sincere_a christian_a faith_n but_o also_o of_o a_o clear_a excellent_a wit_n to_o conceive_v they_o and_o not_o to_o permit_v wander_v unruly_a fancy_n destitute_a of_o reason_n to_o control_v our_o belief_n about_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n so_o many_o way_n by_o the_o grave_a testimony_n of_o antiquity_n recommend_v unto_o us._n answer_n that_o accident_n may_v subsist_v and_o have_v their_o natural_a force_n and_o operation_n without_o a_o subject_n of_o support_n or_o inhaerencie_n imply_v a_o contradiction_n for_o it_o be_v of_o the_o be_v and_o definition_n of_o accident_n to_o be_v in_o another_o inesse_fw-la or_o to_o be_v in_o their_o subject_n and_o none_o of_o the_o example_n take_v from_o a_o kernel_n ash_n iron_n in_o the_o belly_n of_o a_o ostrich_n the_o bark_n of_o a_o tree_n etc._n etc._n be_v ad_fw-la idem_fw-la for_o these_o be_v not_o accident_n without_o a_o substance_n but_o real_a body_n have_v by_o nature_n a_o proportion_n and_o propension_n to_o produce_v their_o own_o effect_n either_o as_o seminal_a cause_n or_o true_a material_n convert_v by_o heat_n fire_n and_o art_n or_o thing_n putrescent_fw-la form_v and_o animate_v by_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o other_o secret_a and_o natural_a cause_n that_o a_o akorne_n shall_v become_v a_o oak_n be_v wonderful_a as_o the_o work_n of_o god_n be_v yet_o it_o be_v as_o natural_a as_o that_o a_o lion_n beget_v a_o lion_n nay_o as_o that_o the_o sun_n or_o fire_n shine_v that_o of_o ash_n be_v make_v glass_n what_o be_v it_o but_o that_o a_o transparent_a body_n be_v make_v of_o a_o body_n not_o transparent_a so_o you_o of_o snow_n etc._n etc._n and_o concern_v stone_n iron_n etc._n etc._n i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o these_o feed_v or_o nourish_v dove_n hawk_n struthiocameles_a etc._n etc._n but_o only_o cool_v or_o cleanse_v they_o and_o this_o i_o count_v not_o impossible_a in_o nature_n that_o vegetative_a heat_n shall_v in_o short_a time_n dissolve_v stone_n the_o barnacle_n be_v generatio_fw-la ex_fw-la putri_fw-la as_o be_v mouse_n frog_n and_o serpent_n but_o what_o be_v this_o to_o accident_n nourish_v without_o matter_n and_o substance_n now_o for_o all_o the_o former_a we_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o certainty_n by_o natural_a reason_n and_o by_o experience_n of_o our_o sense_n but_o there_o be_v no_o natural_a or_o supernatural_a rule_n or_o law_n no_o manifest_a demonstration_n either_o to_o sense_n or_o reason_n no_o revelation_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o abstract_a form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n subsist_v without_o a_o subject_n and_o have_v power_n to_o nourish_v and_o may_v be_v taste_v and_o feel_v and_o also_o putrify_v but_o romist_n presumptuous_o form_v these_o chimera_n and_o idol_n in_o the_o forge_n of_o their_o own_o deceive_a breast_n and_o they_o deserve_v to_o be_v feed_v only_o with_o accident_n like_o bird_n that_o peck_v at_o the_o paint_a grape_n etc._n which_o think_v to_o feed_v any_o intelligent_a reader_n with_o such_o improper_a and_o extravagant_a accident_n jesvit_n 3._o consideration_n three_o to_o make_v christian_n incline_v to_o 〈◊〉_d this_o mystery_n so_o difficile_a to_o carnal_a imagination_n this_o consideration_n may_v be_v very_o potent_a to_o wit_n that_o in_o believe_v the_o same_o on_o the_o one_o side_n there_o may_v be_v great_a merit_n and_o excellent_a faith_n if_o it_o be_v a_o truth_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n though_o which_o be_v impossible_a it_o shall_v be_v false_a yet_o in_o believe_v it_o we_o shall_v not_o fall_v into_o any_o damnable_a error_n for_o although_o we_o suppose_v this_o a_o unpossible_a case_n yet_o what_o can_v be_v lay_v to_o our_o charge_n which_o we_o may_v not_o defend_v and_o justify_v by_o all_o the_o rule_n of_o equity_n and_o reason_n if_o we_o be_v accuse_v that_o we_o take_v bread_n to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n adore_v the_o same_o as_o god_n so_o commit_v idolatry_n we_o may_v defend_v that_o both_o for_o soul_n and_o body_n we_o be_v innocent_a herein_o for_o see_v the_o body_n be_v not_o make_v guilty_a but_o by_o a_o guilty_a mind_n even_o our_o body_n may_v plead_v not_o guilty_a see_v our_o mind_n our_o thought_n or_o devotion_n be_v full_o and_o total_o refer_v unto_o christ_n who_o we_o true_o apprehend_v by_o faith_n as_o veil_v with_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o so_o may_v repel_v the_o reproach_n of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d bread_n worshipper_n with_o say_v quae_fw-la novit_fw-la mens_fw-la est_fw-la pani_fw-la nil_fw-la vovimus_fw-la illa_fw-la neither_o do_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o christ_n body_n upon_o sleight_n reason_n or_o move_v by_o the_o fancy_n of_o our_o own_o head_n but_o contrary_a to_o our_o fancy_n out_o of_o reverence_n to_o the_o express_a word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n a_o sense_n declare_v by_o most_o ancient_a father_n define_v by_o many_o general_a counsel_n deliver_v by_o full_a consent_n of_o our_o ancestor_n so_o practise_v in_o the_o church_n for_o many_o age_n without_o any_o know_a beginning_n final_o confirm_v with_o the_o most_o credible_a and_o constant_a report_n of_o innumerable_a most_o evident_a miracle_n can_v a_o christian_a believe_v any_o point_n of_o religion_n upon_o sure_a ground_n and_o if_o god_n at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n will_v condemn_v none_o but_o such_o as_o live_n in_o this_o world_n wrong_v he_o in_o his_o honour_n why_o shall_v catholic_n fear_v any_o hard_a sentence_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o prompt_a credulity_n of_o transubstantiation_n that_o be_v of_o god_n word_n take_v in_o the_o plain_a proper_a sense_n be_v it_o a_o 〈◊〉_d to_o his_o verity_n that_o they_o deny_v their_o sense_n correct_v their_o imagination_n reform_v their_o discourse_n abnegate_n their_o judgement_n rather_o than_o not_o to_o believe_v what_o to_o they_o seem_v his_o word_n be_v it_o a_o injury_n to_o his_o power_n to_o be_v persuade_v he_o can_v do_v thing_n incomprehensible_a without_o number_n put_v the_o same_o body_n in_o innumerable_a place_n at_o once_o make_v a_o body_n occupy_v no_o place_n and_o yet_o remain_v a_o quantitative_a substance_n
in_o itself_o be_v it_o injury_n to_o his_o charity_n to_o think_v that_o love_n unto_o man_n make_v he_o unite_v himself_o real_o and_o substantial_o with_o they_o and_o to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v incarnate_a anew_o in_o every_o particular_a faithful_a man_n enter_v real_o into_o their_o body_n to_o signify_v efficatious_o his_o inward_a conjunction_n by_o spirit_n unto_o their_o soul_n final_o be_v it_o a_o injury_n to_o his_o wisdom_n to_o believe_v that_o to_o satisfy_v on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o will_n of_o his_o father_n that_o will_v have_v he_o ever_o in_o heaven_n sit_v at_o his_o right_a hand_n on_o the_o other_o side_n the_o ardency_n of_o his_o own_o affection_n unto_o man_n desire_v to_o be_v perpetual_o with_o they_o he_o invent_v a_o manner_n how_o still_o remain_v glorious_a in_o heaven_n he_o may_v also_o be_v continual_o on_o earth_n with_o his_o church_n secret_o not_o to_o take_v from_o they_o the_o merit_n of_o faith_n yet_o to_o afford_v full_a satisfaction_n to_o his_o own_o love_n real_o by_o continue_v personal_a presence_n and_o most_o intime_fw-la conjunction_n with_o they_o on_o the_o other_o side_n it_o import_v they_o that_o think_v transubstantiation_n impossible_a or_o that_o god_n can_v put_v the_o same_o body_n in_o different_a place_n at_o once_o to_o consider_v if_o they_o err_v easy_o it_o be_v for_o man_n to_o err_v that_o with_o the_o compass_n of_o their_o understand_n measure_v the_o power_n of_o god_n how_o dangerous_a and_o unexcusable_a their_o error_n will_v prove_v when_o they_o shall_v be_v call_v to_o give_v unto_o their_o omnipotent_a maker_n a_o final_a account_n particular_o of_o this_o doctrine_n so_o much_o derogate_a from_o he_o let_v they_o think_v how_o they_o will_v answer_v if_o god_n lie_v to_o their_o charge_n the_o neglect_n of_o the_o most_o prudent_a and_o reasonable_a advice_n which_o s._n chrys._n give_v let_v we_o believe_v math._n god_n say_v he_o let_v we_o not_o reject_v his_o word_n though_o the_o same_o seem_v secret_a and_o absurd_a unto_o our_o cogitation_n and_o sense_n for_o his_o speech_n do_v surpass_v our_o reason_n and_o sense_n his_o word_n can_v deceive_v we_o but_o our_o sense_n be_v deceive_v easy_o and_o often_o how_o will_v they_o reply_v if_o they_o be_v press_v with_o the_o interrogatory_n which_o s._n cyril_n make_v unto_o such_o misbeliever_n if_o 52._o thou_o can_v not_o comprehend_v the_o divine_a operation_n of_o god_n why_o do_v thou_o not_o accuse_v the_o imbecility_n of_o man_n wit_n rather_o than_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o god_n or_o how_o dispute_v or_o propose_v so_o many_o argument_n against_o god_n power_n reject_v or_o question_v the_o same_o because_o they_o can_v not_o understand_v it_o they_o never_o call_v to_o mind_v the_o say_n of_o s._n augustine_n 11._o ecce_fw-la quibus_fw-la argumentis_fw-la divinae_fw-la omnipotentiae_fw-la humana_fw-la contradicit_fw-la infirmitas_fw-la answer_n this_o three_o and_o last_o consideration_n be_v a_o mere_a declamation_n ground_v upon_o a_o vain_a supposition_n for_o it_o presume_v as_o grant_v the_o opinion_n of_o transubstantiation_n to_o be_v most_o probable_a and_o reasonable_a as_o be_v declare_v by_o many_o ancient_a father_n define_v by_o general_a counsel_n etc._n etc._n but_o this_o supposition_n be_v a_o beg_n of_o the_o question_n for_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o ancient_a father_n or_o general_a council_n do_v ever_o declare_v or_o define_v the_o same_o as_o it_o will_v plain_o appear_v to_o all_o judicious_a person_n which_o shall_v compare_v and_o apply_v the_o sentence_n of_o father_n and_o ancient_a counsel_n to_o the_o popish_a definition_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o say_a doctrine_n be_v not_o ground_v upon_o our_o saviour_n word_n and_o the_o miracle_n which_o romist_n venditate_fw-la to_o authorise_v the_o same_o be_v either_o friar_n fable_n veritatem_fw-la or_o report_v misapply_v and_o wrest_v to_o a_o contrary_a end_n and_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v merit_n or_o at_o leastwise_o less_o peril_n in_o adhere_v to_o this_o doctrine_n rather_o than_o to_o any_o other_o aliud_fw-la may_v be_v proclaim_v over_o and_o over_o again_o by_o romist_n fallatiarum_fw-la but_o it_o deserve_v credit_n when_o they_o demonstrate_v that_o a_o opinion_n which_o be_v not_o ground_v upon_o divine_a revelation_n and_o which_o contain_v so_o many_o difficulty_n as_o can_v be_v solue_v and_o the_o belief_n whereof_o be_v unnecessary_a can_v be_v embrace_v with_o safety_n and_o expectation_n of_o reward_n to_o the_o word_n follow_v in_o the_o jesuit_n that_o he_o may_v also_o be_v continual_o with_o his_o church_n secret_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o exclude_v transubstantiation_n christ_n jesus_n be_v continual_o with_o his_o church_n secret_o by_o his_o grace_n spirit_n and_o mystical_a union_n and_o he_o dwell_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o justify_v person_n by_o faith_n epke_v 3._o v._n 17._o s._n chrysostome_n s._n cyril_n and_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o place_n object_v affirm_v that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v our_o dull_a and_o carnal_a sense_n when_o it_o suggest_v unto_o we_o that_o which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o faith_n and_o when_o it_o acknowledge_v no_o other_o force_n and_o operation_n in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n but_o that_o which_o be_v sensible_a and_o natural_a but_o embrace_v this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n we_o can_v from_o thence_o extract_v the_o fancy_n of_o transubstantiation_n learned_a papist_n themselves_o acknowledge_v the_o intricacy_n and_o difficulty_n of_o this_o article_n implicarunt_fw-la many_o of_o they_o affirm_v that_o seclude_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o divine_a revelation_n compel_v to_o believe_v it_o 〈◊〉_d the_o doctrine_n be_v not_o catholic_a or_o ancient_a 41._o the_o propugner_n of_o it_o until_o the_o late_a trident_n council_n disagree_v in_o that_o which_o be_v main_a and_o substantial_a escere_fw-la in_o it_o and_o for_o avoid_v one_o figure_n they_o make_v many_o 124._o therefore_o it_o stand_v not_o with_o christian_a wisdom_n to_o embrace_v or_o maintain_v this_o doctrine_n and_o romist_n be_v more_o confident_a than_o prudent_a in_o impose_v the_o same_o as_o a_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n censure_v the_o noncredent_n as_o heinous_a heretic_n my_o final_a conclusion_n about_o this_o article_n be_v that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v not_o express_o teach_v or_o formal_o deduce_v from_o holy_a soripture_n etc._n which_o no_o ancient_a council_n or_o church_n for_o the_o first_o 600_o year_n plain_o teach_v and_o unto_o which_o many_o adverse_a passage_n be_v extant_a in_o the_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n also_o which_o be_v repugnant_a to_o sense_n and_o common_a reason_n and_o have_v no_o apparent_a utility_n habetur_fw-la ought_v not_o to_o be_v impose_v as_o a_o article_n of_o divine_a faith_n but_o such_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o romish_a transubstantiation_n therefore_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v impose_v as_o a_o article_n of_o divine_a faith_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v either_o cancel_v this_o part_n of_o their_o new_a creed_n or_o be_v less_o censorious_a in_o obtrude_a of_o it_o the_o seven_o point_n communion_n under_o one_o kind_a and_o the_o abet_v of_o it_o by_o concomitancie_n jesuit_fw-la your_o most_o excellent_a majesty_n in_o the_o proposition_n of_o this_o controversy_n show_v your_o deep_a insight_n into_o theological_a difficulty_n perceive_v a_o main_a ground_n whereon_o the_o catholic_a opinion_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n stand_v to_o wit_n concomitancie_n which_o be_v grant_v communion_n under_o one_o kind_n be_v justify_v answer_n if_o his_o sacred_a majesty_n shall_v yield_v you_o concomitancie_n yet_o upon_o that_o ground_n communion_n in_o one_o kind_n can_v not_o be_v justify_v nevertheless_o we_o deny_v both_o 〈◊〉_d and_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n jesuit_fw-la jesuit_o 1._o the_o doctrine_n of_o concomitancie_n prove_v the_o doctrine_n of_o concomitancie_n be_v that_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n not_o only_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o his_o precious_a blood_n and_o bless_a soul_n be_v true_o and_o real_o contain_v the_o body_n direct_o and_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n the_o blood_n and_o the_o soul_n consequent_o for_o be_v contain_v within_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n they_o must_v needs_o concomitate_fw-la that_o be_v follow_v the_o body_n in_o what_o place_n soever_o the_o same_o be_v neither_o can_v any_o that_o acknowledge_v the_o real_a presence_n deny_v this_o concomitancie_n without_o fall_v into_o many_o absurdity_n as_o i_o prove_v by_o three_o argument_n answer_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v consider_v two_o way_n first_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o perfect_a live_a body_n second_o as_o it_o be_v represent_v and_o exhibit_v in_o the_o sacrament_n if_o we_o consider_v it_o the_o first_o way_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n can_v proper_o be_v say_v to_o be_v
as_o it_o be_v institute_v and_o if_o this_o than_o it_o may_v be_v use_v in_o wine_n only_o without_o bread_n or_o in_o broth_n or_o in_o flesh_n for_o we_o have_v no_o direction_n or_o rule_n for_o the_o manner_n of_o great_a authority_n than_o the_o institution_n last_o divine_a institution_n do_v not_o only_o signify_v a_o action_n of_o god_n whereby_o he_o give_v be_v unto_o thing_n with_o reference_n to_o their_o end_n in_o which_o manner_n the_o jesuit_n sinister_o define_v it_o etc._n but_o it_o signify_v also_o a_o decree_n rule_n precept_n and_o information_n concern_v the_o use_n and_o practice_v of_o that_o which_o god_n have_v ordain_v now_o our_o saviour_n when_o he_o ordain_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o be_v and_o entity_n thereof_o he_o withal_o conjoin_v the_o use_n of_o the_o same_o as_o a_o necessary_a condition_n to_o make_v it_o operative_a and_o effectual_a to_o his_o people_n for_o even_o as_o in_o baptism_n although_o the_o word_n and_o element_n constitute_v the_o sacrament_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o definition_n sacramentum_fw-la yet_o the_o same_o be_v no_o baptism_n ablutio_fw-la to_o we_o until_o the_o word_n &_o water_n be_v apply_v to_o the_o subject_n by_o ablution_n so_o likewise_o in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n the_o word_n and_o element_n make_v the_o definition_n but_o the_o use_n and_o application_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n teach_v by_o christ_n give_v it_o a_o sacramental_a virtue_n and_o operation_n in_o respect_n of_o we_o usum_fw-la jesuit_fw-la jesuit_o 3._o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n not_o against_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v a_o visible_a efficatious_a sign_n of_o invisible_a grace_n four_o thing_n be_v necessary_a to_o concur_v to_o the_o substantial_a constitution_n thereof_o which_o i_o will_v set_v down_o in_o order_n and_o together_o show_v that_o they_o be_v all_o find_v in_o the_o eucharist_n give_v under_o one_o kind_n first_o there_o be_v require_v some_o element_n that_o be_v a_o visible_a and_o sensible_a thing_n or_o action_n without_o which_o no_o sacrament_n can_v subsist_v term_v by_o divine_n materia_fw-la sacramenti_fw-la this_o substantial_a part_n be_v not_o want_v in_o the_o sacrament_n give_v in_o one_o kind_n in_o which_o kind_n there_o be_v consecrate_v bread_n visible_a and_o sensible_a in_o the_o accident_n thereof_o and_o manducation_n also_o a_o action_n visible_a and_o appar_v of_o it_o to_o sense_n answer_n this_o quadripartite_a argument_n at_o least_o in_o the_o three_o foremost_a branch_n be_v mere_o sophistical_a &_o indeed_o against_o common_a sense_n as_o if_o one_o shall_v question_v whether_o a_o man_n without_o leg_n or_o arm_n be_v a_o perfect_a entire_a man_n according_a to_o the_o first_o creation_n of_o mankind_n &_o the_o perpetual_a succeed_a law_n of_o nature_n not_o err_v the_o jesuit_n shall_v answer_v thus_o this_o be_v a_o sufficient_a and_o perfect_a man_n for_o the_o other_o member_n which_o he_o have_v as_o head_n breast_n back_o etc._n etc._n be_v not_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o humane_a nature_n in_o my_o reply_n i_o need_v add_v no_o more_o but_o smile_n and_o yet_o to_o answer_v his_o particular_n first_o in_o every_o sacrament_n there_o be_v require_v not_o only_o a_o sensible_a action_n but_o also_o a_o visible_a and_o material_a sign_n f._n and_o therefore_o to_o speak_v by_o the_o way_n some_o of_o the_o seven_o which_o romist_n number_n in_o their_o list_n or_o calendar_n be_v no_o sacrament_n but_o in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n there_o be_v a_o double_a visible_a element_n and_o material_a visible_a sign_n 63._o to_o wit_n bread_n and_o wine_n math._n 26.26_o 27._o luc._n 22._o 19_o 20._o 1._o cor._n 11.23.25_o and_o these_o outward_a element_n be_v two_o in_o number_n and_o divide_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o be_v distinct_o and_o several_o distribute_v by_o our_o saviour_n and_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o communicant_n apart_o the_o one_o of_o they_o after_o the_o other_o and_o although_o they_o make_v but_o one_o sacrament_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o definition_n as_o similarie_n and_o dissimilarie_a part_n make_v but_o one_o body_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o diversity_n and_o plurality_n both_o in_o their_o matter_n and_o form_n 2._o and_o a_o reason_n why_o they_o must_v be_v two_o and_o not_o one_o individual_a sign_n jesuit_fw-la the_o second_o thing_n require_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v verbum_fw-la the_o word_n that_o be_v a_o form_n of_o speech_n show_v the_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a purpose_n unto_o which_o the_o element_n be_v consecrate_v neither_o be_v that_o part_n want_v in_o the_o sacrament_n give_v under_o one_o kind_n which_o be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o the_o theological_a principle_n take_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n verify_v joan._n accedit_fw-la verbum_fw-la ad_fw-la elementum_fw-la &_o fit_a sacramentum_fw-la answer_n as_o the_o outward_a element_n be_v two_o in_o number_n so_o likewise_o a_o double_a act_n of_o blessing_n and_o consecration_n must_v pass_v upon_o they_o 2._o for_o otherwise_o that_o part_n which_o want_v benediction_n be_v not_o a_o sacramental_a sign_n but_o a_o common_a creature_n and_o if_o any_o sign_n be_v omit_v than_o the_o sacrament_n want_v integrity_n of_o part_n jesuit_fw-la the_o three_o thing_n be_v signification_n every_o sacrament_n signify_v some_o divine_a effect_n of_o grace_n which_o god_n work_v by_o the_o application_n thereof_o and_o the_o sensible_a sign_n even_o by_o nature_n have_v as_o s._n augustine_n note_v some_o proportion_n and_o bonifac._n analagie_a to_o signify_v that_o divine_a effect_n which_o to_o produce_v it_o be_v assume_v by_o god_n omnipotency_n as_o a_o instrument_n this_o 23._o sacred_a signification_n which_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n have_v be_v of_o three_o kind_n and_o all_o three_o be_v find_v in_o the_o sacrament_n give_v under_o one_o kind_n first_o this_o sacrament_n be_v a_o sign_n of_o spiritual_a food_n for_o the_o nourishment_n and_o refection_n of_o the_o soul_n which_o signification_n be_v manifest_o find_v in_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n for_o the_o eucharist_n do_v signify_v this_o effect_n of_o spiritual_a nutrition_n because_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o christ_n the_o bread_n of_o life_n the_o food_n of_o angel_n the_o fountain_n of_o grace_n but_o by_o the_o sole_a form_n of_o bread_n christ_n be_v signify_v as_o present_v according_a to_o his_o most_o sacred_a body_n and_o consequent_o as_o most_o sufficient_a to_o feed_v and_o refresh_v the_o soul_n another_o signification_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v union_n and_o conjunction_n between_o the_o faithful_a as_o be_v member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n whereof_o christ_n be_v head_n and_o fellow_n member_n one_o with_o another_o as_o s._n paul_n declare_v which_o conjunction_n the_o sacrament_n in_o 12._o the_o form_n of_o bread_n do_v signify_v for_o bread_n be_v a_o compound_n of_o many_o grain_n of_o wheat_n mass_v together_o in_o one_o loaf_n and_o also_o make_v of_o flower_n and_o water_n mingle_v one_o with_o another_o signify_v the_o perfect_a union_n both_o of_o the_o church_n with_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v in_o the_o church_n one_o with_o another_o as_o s._n paul_n testify_v vnum_fw-la corpus_fw-la 17._o sumus_fw-la quotquot_fw-la de_fw-la uno_fw-la pane_n participamus_fw-la where_o he_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o wine_n the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n be_v alone_o able_a to_o show_v and_o work_v this_o signification_n this_o sacrament_n do_v also_o signify_v the_o passion_n and_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n which_o death_n and_o passion_n be_v show_v and_o represent_v by_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n for_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o form_n of_o wine_n only_o we_o have_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o remember_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n that_o be_v in_o his_o passion_n shed_v and_o separate_v from_o his_o body_n likewise_o by_o participate_v of_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n we_o may_v lively_o conceive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o it_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o most_o precious_a blood_n by_o the_o effusion_n thereof_o on_o the_o cross_n whereupon_o christ_n as_o s._n paul_n testify_v do_v 15._o after_o the_o consecration_n of_o each_o kind_n particular_o recommend_v the_o memory_n of_o his_o passion_n as_o know_v that_o in_o each_o of_o they_o alone_o be_v a_o sufficient_a monument_n and_o memorial_n thereof_o answer_n signification_n may_v be_v find_v in_o type_n and_o figure_n be_v no_o sacrament_n as_o in_o a_o vine_n and_o branch_n a_o natural_a humane_a body_n a_o material_a house_n or_o temple_n a_o lamb_n lead_v before_o the_o shearer_n and_o the_o like_a but_o yet_o because_o they_o be_v otherwise_o in_o the_o sacrament_n both_o in_o regard_n of_o a_o more_o perfect_a and_o lively_a representation_n and_o also_o because_o a_o
special_a promise_n of_o divine_a assistance_n and_o grace_n be_v annex_v to_o the_o sacramental_a sign_n use_v and_o receive_v according_a to_o christ_n institution_n which_o belong_v not_o to_o other_o sign_n and_o figure_n therefore_o it_o be_v inconsequent_a to_o say_v one_o element_n receive_v alone_o signify_v as_o much_o in_o substance_n as_o both_o ergo_fw-la the_o use_n of_o one_o element_n be_v as_o profitable_a and_o effectual_a as_o the_o use_n and_o reception_n of_o both_o but_o if_o the_o objection_n be_v reduce_v to_o form_n the_o defect_n will_v be_v more_o apparent_a if_o there_o be_v the_o same_o signification_n of_o one_o single_a element_n which_o there_o be_v of_o both_o then_o there_o be_v the_o same_o benefit_n obtain_v by_o receive_v one_o which_o be_v obtain_v by_o receive_v both_o but_o there_o be_v the_o same_o signification_n of_o one_o single_a element_n which_o there_o be_v of_o both_o to_o wit_n spiritual_a food_n union_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o christ_n passion_n ergo_fw-la there_o be_v the_o same_o benefit_n obtain_v by_o receive_v in_o one_o kind_n as_o in_o both_o i_o answer_v first_o deny_v the_o consequence_n of_o the_o mayor_n proposition_n for_o although_o there_o be_v the_o same_o signification_n in_o one_o element_n which_o be_v of_o both_o yet_o there_o be_v not_o equal_a benefit_n reap_v by_o receive_v one_o as_o be_v reap_v by_o receive_v both_o because_o the_o promise_n of_o grace_n be_v annex_v to_o the_o receive_v both_o and_o not_o to_o the_o receive_n of_o one_o without_o the_o other_o for_o when_o a_o promise_n be_v make_v upon_o condition_n of_o a_o duty_n to_o be_v perform_v the_o promise_n be_v not_o fulfil_v but_o upon_o observe_v the_o condition_n now_o christ_n have_v institute_v the_o sacrament_n as_o a_o seal_n of_o his_o covenant_n and_o appoint_v the_o same_o to_o be_v receive_v in_o both_o kind_n as_o his_o institution_n show_v facite_fw-la the_o church_n can_v expect_v that_o christ_n shall_v fulfil_v his_o promise_n in_o give_v his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n by_o the_o sacrament_n unless_o the_o church_n observe_v his_o ordinance_n and_o do_v that_o which_o he_o appoint_v also_o obedience_n be_v better_a than_o sacrifice_n 1._o sam._n 15._o 22._o but_o when_o we_o administer_v and_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n we_o obey_v christ_n say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o and_o we_o disobey_v when_o we_o do_v otherwise_o therefore_o although_o there_o be_v the_o same_o signification_n of_o one_o element_n which_o be_v of_o both_o yet_o the_o same_o benefit_n be_v not_o reap_v by_o receive_v one_o which_o be_v obtain_v by_o receive_v both_o second_o to_o the_o assumption_n i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v a_o more_o perfect_a and_o lively_a representation_n vini_fw-la of_o spiritual_a feed_n and_o refection_n and_o of_o conjunction_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o of_o christ_n death_n and_o sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n by_o both_o the_o sign_n than_o by_o one_o and_o pour_v out_o of_o the_o wine_n funditur_fw-la do_v in_o a_o clear_a manner_n represent_v and_o signify_v the_o effusion_n of_o christ_n blood_n and_o also_o the_o separation_n of_o his_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o there_o be_v a_o more_o perfect_a docuit_fw-la similitude_n of_o nourishment_n in_o bread_n and_o wine_n 〈◊〉_d together_o than_o in_o bread_n alone_o eccles._n 4._o 9_o so_o likewise_o two_o element_n represent_v more_o than_o one_o and_o nourish_v more_o than_o one_o and_o unite_v more_o than_o one_o otherwise_o if_o the_o representation_n of_o one_o element_n be_v equal_a to_o the_o representation_n of_o both_o to_o what_o purpose_n shall_v our_o saviour_n institute_v a_o sacrament_n in_o two_o kind_n which_o according_a to_o papist_n who_o will_v seem_v wise_a than_o god_n mortuis_fw-la be_v as_o sufficient_a in_o one_o kind_n as_o in_o both_o jesuit_fw-la the_o four_o thing_n require_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o a_o sacrament_n be_v causalitie_n to_o wit_n to_o work_v in_o the_o soul_n the_o spiritual_a effect_n it_o signify_v this_o causalitie_n can_v be_v want_v to_o the_o sacrament_n under_o one_o kind_n wherein_o be_v contain_v the_o fountain_n of_o spiritual_a life_n for_o the_o cause_n why_o the_o sacrament_n in_o both_o kind_n give_v grace_n and_o refresh_v the_o soul_n be_v that_o christ_n be_v assistant_n unto_o they_o bind_v by_o his_o promise_n at_o the_o presence_n of_o sensible_a sign_n to_o work_v the_o proportionable_a spiritual_a effect_n in_o dispose_v soul_n but_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o he_o be_v able_a through_o infinite_a power_n and_o bind_v by_o inviolable_a promise_n to_o work_v the_o effect_n of_o grace_n preserve_v unto_o life_n eternal_a the_o worthy_a participant_a of_o this_o sacrament_n under_o the_o form_n 6.55_o of_o bread_n qui_fw-la manducat_fw-la hunc_fw-la panem_fw-la vivet_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la not_o any_o doubt_n than_o may_v be_v make_v but_o the_o sacrament_n in_o one_o kind_n be_v full_a entire_a complete_a in_o substance_n and_o by_o participation_n thereof_o prepare_a conscience_n do_v receive_v the_o benefit_n of_o celestial_a favour_n that_o conserve_v the_o life_n of_o the_o soul_n with_o daily_a increase_n in_o perfection_n answer_n the_o sum_n of_o this_o objection_n be_v there_o be_v the_o same_o power_n of_o cause_v grace_n in_o one_o sign_n receive_v alone_o as_o in_o both_o because_o christ_n the_o fountain_n of_o grace_n be_v receive_v in_o one_o sign_n alone_o joh._n 6._o 51._o therefore_o the_o receive_n of_o one_o sign_n alone_o be_v as_o sufficient_a and_o profitable_a as_o the_o sumption_n of_o both_o the_o antecedent_n of_o this_o argument_n be_v deny_v and_o the_o scripture_n joh._n 6._o 51._o say_v not_o whosoever_o eat_v sacramental_a bread_n without_o wine_n shall_v live_v for_o ever_o but_o if_o any_o eat_v this_o bread_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o wit_n christ_n jesus_n incarnate_a christi_fw-la shall_v live_v for_o ever_o and_o then_o it_o follow_v unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o joh._n 6.53_o now_o let_v the_o romi_v choose_v which_o exposition_n he_o please_v if_o our_o saviour_n in_o these_o last_o word_n speak_v of_o sacramental_a and_o spiritual_a eat_n joint_o than_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n be_v necessary_a to_o life_n eternal_a and_o if_o he_o speak_v of_o spiritual_a eat_n only_o by_o faith_n than_o this_o scripture_n prove_v not_o the_o necessity_n of_o receive_v either_o bread_n or_o wine_n tempore_fw-la and_o much_o less_o prove_v it_o that_o there_o be_v the_o power_n of_o cause_v grace_n in_o receive_v bread_n alone_o jesuit_fw-la jesuit_o 4._o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n not_o against_o christ_n his_o precept_n although_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n pertain_v not_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o if_o christ_n do_v special_o command_v the_o same_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o that_o observance_n and_o shall_v by_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n sin_v not_o against_o his_o sacrament_n and_o institution_n but_o against_o a_o special_a divine_a precept_n answer_n when_o christ_n institute_v the_o sacrament_n he_o provide_v and_o prescribe_v two_o material_a element_n and_o not_o one_o only_o or_o none_o and_o he_o sanctify_v and_o distribute_v both_o and_o with_o his_o institution_n and_o practice_n he_o conjoin_v a_o precept_n do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o saint_n paul_n likewise_o say_v let_v a_o man_n prove_v himself_o and_o so_o let_v he_o eat_v of_o this_o bread_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o cup_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n in_o their_o day_n and_o of_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o saint_n paul_n own_o practice_n appear_v 1._o cor._n 10.16_o &_o cap._n 11.26_o and_o he_o describe_v communicate_v by_o take_v the_o cup_n as_o a_o most_o noble_a part_n say_v you_o can_v drink_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o cup_n of_o devil_n 1._o cor._n 10.21_o justin_n martyr_n who_o border_n 77._o upon_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o christian_n in_o his_o age_n distribute_v the_o sanctify_a bread_n and_o wine_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o every_o one_o present_a and_o he_o add_v further_a that_o the_o apostle_n teach_v that_o jesus_n command_v 〈◊〉_d they_o to_o do_v thus_o saint_n chrysostome_n say_v 18._o that_o whereas_o in_o the_o old_a law_n there_o be_v a_o difference_n between_o priest_n and_o laic_n in_o communicate_v of_o victimes_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n it_o be_v otherwise_o for_o one_o body_n and_o one_o cup_n be_v minister_v to_o all_o this_o practice_n continue_v as_o a_o law_n more_o than_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ._n and_o haimo_n 109._o who_o live_v in_o the_o year_n 850._o say_v that_o in_o his_o day_n all_o the_o people_n receive_v out_o of_o the_o
aught_o to_o know_v they_o and_o thud_v god_n himself_o forgive_a sin_n know_v they_o psal._n 69.6_o but_o they_o which_o forgive_v sin_n declarative_o remitrente_n and_o by_o publish_v god_n judicial_a act_n like_v as_o a_o crier_n pronounce_v the_o sentence_n of_o a_o judge_n and_o by_o apply_v the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n to_o penitent_a person_n upon_o the_o holy_a and_o worthy_a receive_n whereof_o the_o holy_a ghost_n himself_o confer_v the_o grace_n of_o remission_n may_v perform_v that_o which_o belong_v to_o their_o office_n without_o distinct_a knowledge_n of_o all_o the_o particular_a sin_n whereof_o the_o penitent_a person_n have_v repent_v himself_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n confitendi_fw-la as_o appear_v in_o baptism_n and_o general_a confession_n join_v with_o contrition_n and_o when_o a_o priest_n apply_v the_o word_n of_o absolution_n he_o know_v not_o whether_o the_o person_n confess_v his_o sin_n perform_v the_o same_o true_o and_o with_o contrition_n of_o heart_n or_o not_o john_n medina_n absoluatur_fw-la cardinal_n caietan_n praeceptum_fw-la and_o jansenius_n necessariam_fw-la acknowledge_v the_o weakness_n of_o this_o argument_n to_o prove_v auricular_a confession_n and_o vasques_n say_v that_o a_o man_n can_v hardly_o find_v among_o those_o which_o maintain_v auricular_a confession_n out_o of_o the_o place_n of_o joh._n 20._o 23._o which_o do_v effectual_o conclude_v the_o same_o from_o thence_o deducat_fw-la joh._n medina_n treat_v of_o auricular_a confession_n say_v insudarunt_fw-la the_o roman_a catholic_a doctor_n have_v labour_v till_o they_o sweat_v again_o to_o find_v proof_n for_o this_o verity_n he_o may_v well_o have_v say_v they_o labour_v to_o as_o good_a purpose_n as_o the_o man_n who_o seek_v to_o find_v nodum_fw-la in_o scirpo_fw-la or_o a_o needle_n in_o a_o bottle_n of_o hay_n mich._n palacius_n conveniant_fw-la say_v divine_n be_v perplex_v in_o find_v place_n of_o scripture_n or_o other_o convince_a argument_n to_o prove_v auricular_a confession_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n and_o it_o be_v worthy_a admiration_n what_o contention_n be_v about_o this_o matter_n and_o how_o bad_o author_n agree_v concern_v the_o same_o our_o adversary_n labour_n tooth_n and_o nail_n to_o prove_v from_o the_o former_a text_n in_o s._n john_n that_o priest_n exercise_v a_o judicial_a power_n when_o they_o absolve_v sinner_n but_o if_o this_o be_v grant_v they_o gain_v nothing_o for_o this_o judicial_a power_n be_v exercise_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o if_o that_o word_n absolve_v contrite_a and_o penitent_a person_n upon_o internal_a confession_n to_o god_n himself_o poenitentes_fw-la and_o upon_o their_o general_a confession_n before_o man_n without_o secret_a confession_n than_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o because_o a_o priest_n exercise_v a_o judicial_a power_n when_o he_o absolve_v ergo_fw-la penitent_n must_v confess_v all_o their_o know_a sin_n a_o penitent_a person_n may_v have_v mortal_a sin_n which_o he_o remember_v not_o psal._n 19.13_o and_o when_o upon_o profession_n of_o his_o repentance_n he_o be_v absolve_v those_o sin_n be_v pardon_v 〈◊〉_d psal._n 103.3_o and_o the_o priest_n in_o give_v absolution_n exercise_v a_o judicial_a act_n according_a to_o the_o popish_a tenet_n and_o yet_o those_o fin_n be_v not_o disclose_v or_o manifest_v unto_o he_o second_o the_o present_a romish_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o auricular_a confession_n be_v not_o catholic_a the_o greek_a church_n both_o of_o ancient_a and_o late_a time_n reject_v the_o same_o as_o appear_v by_o nectarius_n 3._o s._n chrysostome_n naturae_fw-la and_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o learned_a papist_n which_o affirm_v the_o same_o concern_v that_o church_n the_o gloss_n upon_o gratian_n say_v talis_fw-la auricular_a confession_n be_v not_o necessary_a among_o the_o grecian_n greg._n val._n lib._n 2._o d._n miss_z cap._n 4._o say_v that_o panormitan_n and_o gerson_n maintain_v that_o secret_a confession_n be_v not_o necessary_a andrea_n vega_n 28._o very_o many_o learned_a catholic_n have_v doubt_v of_o this_o necessity_n of_o confession_n by_o divine_a law_n maldenat_n praeceptam_fw-la sum_fw-la q._n 18._o be_v 4._o there_o be_v also_o among_o catholic_n which_o think_v there_o be_v no_o divine_a precept_n touch_v auricular_a confession_n to_o wit_n all_o the_o interpreter_n of_o the_o decree_n and_o also_o scotus_n b._n rhenanus_fw-la praefat._n and_o petrus_n oxomensis_n 1._o deny_v the_o say_a confession_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n and_o gratian_n 256._o himself_o have_v dispute_v the_o question_n pro_fw-la &_o con_v conclude_v in_o this_o manner_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o reader_n choice_n which_o opinion_n to_o follow_v because_o each_o opinion_n to_o wit_n the_o one_o hold_v confession_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n and_o the_o other_o ecclesiastical_a have_v fautor_n both_o wise_a and_o religious_a now_o if_o auricular_a confession_n be_v not_o certain_o and_o infallible_o of_o divine_a institution_n than_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o the_o same_o conjoin_v with_o absolution_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n because_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v immediate_o institute_v by_o christ_n and_o have_v their_o institution_n matter_n form_n visible_a sign_n and_o promise_n express_o and_o manifest_o deliver_v and_o appoint_v in_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n from_o hence_o i_o argue_v if_o that_o which_o romist_n term_v sacramental_a penance_n have_v no_o word_n of_o institution_n no_o visible_a and_o corporeal_a element_n spiritualem_fw-la no_o express_a form_n or_o word_n of_o consecration_n neither_o any_o sacramental_a effect_n appropriate_v unto_o it_o by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n then_o the_o same_o be_v no_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o all_o and_o every_o of_o these_o condition_n be_v want_v in_o popish_a penance_n ergo_fw-la the_o same_o be_v no_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n if_o penitency_n be_v not_o affirm_v by_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n proper_o take_v then_o that_o the_o same_o be_v such_o in_o our_o day_n be_v not_o catholic_a doctrine_n but_o learned_a pontifician_n have_v narrow_o search_v every_o sentence_n of_o antiquity_n concern_v penitency_n and_o can_v yet_o produce_v one_o place_n where_o the_o same_o be_v plain_o and_o express_o affirm_v to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n proper_o take_v to_o wit_n such_o as_o be_v baptism_n and_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n therefore_o the_o present_a doctrine_n of_o romist_n concern_v penitency_n that_o the_o same_o be_v a_o sacrament_n be_v neither_o ground_v upon_o the_o scripture_n nor_o the_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o our_o romish_a adversary_n be_v the_o eight_o time_n svam_fw-la guide_v by_o a_o lie_a spirit_n when_o he_o accuse_v we_o of_o fundamental_a error_n because_o we_o deny_v popish_a penance_n to_o be_v a_o sacrament_n jesuit_fw-la ninthly_o their_o deny_v the_o catholic_a church_n express_o set_v down_o in_o the_o creed_n which_o of_o all_o the_o other_o article_n be_v with_o great_a danger_n deny_v for_o the_o stand_n out_o against_o this_o make_v man_n heretic_n and_o without_o err_v against_o this_o no_o man_n be_v guilty_a of_o heresy_n whatsoever_o doctor_n field_n to_o the_o contrary_n say_v that_o a_o errant_a against_o a_o fundamental_a point_n be_v a_o heretic_n though_o he_o err_v without_o pertinacie_n whereof_o he_o bring_v not_o any_o syllable_n of_o proof_n and_o yet_o his_o doctrine_n be_v against_o the_o whole_a consent_n of_o divine_n and_o express_o against_o s._n augustine_n 16._o who_o say_v that_o a_o man_n hold_v with_o photinus_n who_o error_n be_v most_o fundamental_a against_o the_o trinity_n and_o the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n think_v he_o hold_v catholic_a doctrine_n be_v not_o yet_o a_o heretic_n till_o warn_v that_o he_o hold_v against_o the_o catholic_a church_n he_o choose_v to_o persevere_v in_o his_o error_n answer_n we_o believe_v steadfast_o the_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n concern_v the_o catholic_a church_n and_o deny_v only_o the_o false_a sense_n which_o romist_n impose_v 9_o and_o the_o absurd_a inference_n which_o they_o draw_v from_o this_o article_n and_o whereas_o the_o jesuit_n affirm_v that_o this_o article_n be_v with_o great_a danger_n deny_v because_o the_o stand_n out_o against_o it_o make_v man_n heretic_n etc._n etc._n both_o the_o proposition_n itself_o thus_o raw_o and_o confuse_o deliver_v and_o the_o confirmation_n be_v false_a the_o article_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v not_o the_o most_o fundamental_a and_o prime_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n for_o many_o other_o article_n be_v about_o a_o more_o principal_a and_o excellent_a object_n to_o wit_n immediate_o concern_v god_n the_o creator_n and_o christ_n jesus_n the_o saviour_n and_o redeemer_n and_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n etc._n etc._n whereas_o the_o object_n of_o the_o article_n in_o question_n be_v concern_v the_o creature_n the_o
still_o solicitous_a though_o secure_a of_o their_o own_o as_o s._n mortal_a cyprian_n write_v answer_n the_o bless_a saint_n in_o heaven_n can_v desire_v that_o only_o which_o be_v according_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n math._n 6._o 10._o but_o that_o it_o please_v god_n they_o shall_v desire_v to_o know_v and_o understand_v all_o the_o particular_a action_n and_o occurrent_n of_o people_n on_o earth_n or_o that_o they_o shall_v desire_v to_o know_v the_o honour_n which_o be_v do_v to_o they_o in_o the_o inferior_a world_n must_v be_v believe_v as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n when_o the_o papal_v prove_v it_o by_o divine_a revelation_n and_o although_o according_a to_o s._n cyprian_n bless_a saint_n be_v solicitous_a sollicita_fw-la of_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o chucrh_n militant_a yet_o it_o follow_v not_o ergo_fw-la they_o hear_v the_o petition_n of_o the_o live_n for_o a_o father_n dwell_v in_o london_n which_o have_v his_o son_n at_o constantinople_n be_v solicitous_a of_o his_o son_n safety_n and_o yet_o he_o understandeth_v not_o all_o the_o particular_n about_o he_o jesuit_fw-la wherefore_o our_o doctrine_n that_o saint_n see_v our_o prayer_n be_v deliver_v so_o constant_o by_o the_o ancient_a father_n so_o conformable_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o christian_a belief_n about_o the_o blessedness_n of_o saint_n so_o consonant_a unto_o express_a passage_n of_o scripture_n we_o may_v easy_o expect_v that_o unto_o protestant_n it_o will_v not_o be_v displease_v do_v they_o look_v on_o it_o with_o unpartial_a eye_n special_o they_o have_v no_o text_n of_o scripture_n that_o may_v make_v so_o much_o show_v of_o direct_a opposition_n against_o it_o answer_n your_o insinuation_n be_v conjectural_a and_o at_o the_o best_a seem_o plausible_a but_o your_o disputation_n be_v weak_a wherefore_o we_o admire_v your_o confidence_n in_o a_o case_n so_o groundless_a and_o entreat_v you_o either_o to_o argue_v more_o sound_o or_o else_o to_o be_v less_o vainglorious_a in_o your_o conclusion_n jesuit_fw-la the_o place_n continual_o object_v out_o of_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n abraham_n know_v we_o not_o israel_n be_v ignorant_a of_o we_o thou_o 63.16_o o_o lord_n be_v our_o father_n thou_o our_o redeemer_n have_v this_o sense_n that_o abraham_n and_o jacob_n when_o they_o do_v live_v upon_o earth_n and_o carnal_o beget_v child_n do_v not_o know_v particular_o their_o posterity_n and_o so_o can_v not_o bear_v they_o such_o particular_a affection_n whereas_o god_n can_v and_o do_v distinct_o see_v and_o know_v their_o necessity_n and_o provide_v against_o they_o deliver_v his_o child_n out_o of_o they_o and_o therefore_o he_o be_v the_o only_a father_n the_o only_a redeemer_n abraham_n and_o jacob_n not_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o father_n in_o comparison_n with_o god_n what_o make_v this_o against_o the_o saint_n hear_v our_o prayer_n answer_n we_o receive_v our_o exposition_n of_o this_o place_n of_o isaiah_n cap._n 63.16_o out_o of_o s._n augustine_n agant_fw-la and_o i_o marvel_v why_o the_o jesuit_n reject_v the_o same_o and_o choose_v a_o worse_a because_o his_o own_o party_n agunt_fw-la confess_v that_o abraham_n and_o the_o patriarch_n live_v in_o the_o dark_a lake_n of_o limbus_n do_v not_o hear_v the_o prayer_n of_o their_o posterity_n nor_o behold_v and_o understand_v the_o affair_n of_o their_o child_n live_v upon_o earth_n jesuit_fw-la jesuit_o 3._o the_o worship_n of_o spirit_n and_o truth_n with_o outward_a prostration_n of_o the_o body_n due_a unto_o saint_n the_o three_o cause_n of_o their_o dislike_n be_v that_o we_o give_v the_o honour_n of_o the_o creator_n unto_o the_o creature_n honour_v saint_n with_o religious_a worship_n with_o worship_n of_o spirit_n and_o truth_n even_o to_o the_o prostrate_v of_o our_o body_n before_o they_o whereby_o we_o give_v they_o honour_n due_a to_o god_n only_o and_o bring_v in_o many_o god_n as_o the_o heathen_n do_v to_o this_o objection_n make_v long_o ago_o by_o faustus_n the_o manichee_n s._n austin_n answer_v in_o 21._o these_o word_n the_o christian_a people_n do_v celebrate_v with_o religious_a solemnity_n the_o memory_n of_o martyr_n to_o the_o end_n to_o stir_v up_o themselves_o to_o their_o imitation_n and_o that_o they_o may_v be_v assist_v with_o their_o prayer_n and_o associate_v unto_o their_o merit_n etc._n etc._n but_o with_o the_o worship_n term_v in_o greek_a latria_n and_o which_o the_o latin_a language_n can_v express_v in_o one_o word_n be_v a_o certain_a subjection_n and_o servitude_n due_a proper_o to_o the_o deity_n only_o we_o do_v not_o honour_v any_o but_o only_a god_n nor_o think_v that_o this_o honour_n ought_v to_o be_v give_v but_o only_o to_o he_o these_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n show_v the_o worship_n of_o saint_n to_o be_v on_o the_o one_o side_n more_o than_o civil_a and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n less_o than_o divine_a more_o than_o civil_a as_o proceed_v out_o of_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o excellency_n saint_n have_v superior_a unto_o all_o natural_a by_o which_o they_o be_v partaker_n of_o divine_a perfection_n in_o that_o high_a degree_n as_o no_o substance_n can_v by_o natureparticipate_v thereof_o and_o therefore_o s._n austin_n with_o good_a reason_n term_n it_o religious_a less_o than_o divine_a as_o proceed_v from_o persuasion_n of_o excellency_n though_o superhumane_a yet_o infinite_o inferior_a unto_o the_o increate_v and_o immense_a excellency_n of_o god_n yea_o depend_v essential_o thereof_o so_o that_o honour_n be_v give_v they_o dependent_o of_o god_n as_o be_v superexcellent_a participant_n of_o his_o perfection_n and_o his_o singular_a friend_n answer_n our_o argument_n be_v all_o religious_a worship_n be_v due_a to_o god_n only_o papist_n yield_v to_o saint_n some_o religious_a worship_n ergo_fw-la papist_n yield_v to_o saint_n some_o worship_n due_a to_o god_n only_o the_o jesuit_n pretend_v to_o answer_v by_o distinction_n out_o of_o st._n augustine_n altaria_fw-la say_v that_o religious_a worship_n be_v either_o simple_o divine_a and_o found_v upon_o infinite_a and_o increate_v excellency_n call_v latria_n or_o else_o superhumane_a found_v upon_o grace_n and_o glory_n which_o be_v a_o excellency_n finite_a and_o create_v papist_n yield_v the_o latter_a kind_n of_o religious_a worship_n to_o bless_a saint_n and_o angel_n but_o not_o the_o former_a to_o this_o answer_n protestant_n reply_v say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o kind_n of_o worship_n than_o there_o be_v table_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n but_o there_o be_v only_o two_o table_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n the_o former_a whereof_o teach_v divine_a worship_n and_o the_o second_o humane_a civil_a or_o of_o special_a observance_n 3._o and_o if_o there_o be_v a_o mix_a worship_n partly_o divine_a and_o partly_o humane_a so_o much_o thereof_o as_o be_v divine_a be_v proper_a to_o god_n and_o may_v not_o be_v impart_v to_o any_o creature_n isaiah_n 42.8_o but_o against_o this_o they_o object_n that_o to_o every_o kind_n and_o degree_n of_o excellency_n there_o be_v a_o worship_n due_a proportional_a to_o that_o excellency_n but_o bless_a saint_n and_o angel_n have_v a_o special_a kind_n and_o degree_n of_o excellency_n superior_a to_o they_o which_o live_o upon_o earth_n therefore_o a_o special_a honour_n proportion_v to_o their_o excellency_n and_o superior_a to_o humane_a be_v due_a unto_o they_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o grant_v in_o bless_a saint_n and_o angel_n a_o excellency_n of_o grace_n and_o glory_n and_o honour_n due_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o same_o this_o prove_v not_o that_o they_o be_v to_o be_v adore_v with_o religious_a worship_n for_o then_o holy_a person_n upon_o earth_n may_v be_v worship_v with_o religious_a worship_n but_o the_o virtue_n of_o religion_n according_a to_o the_o tenet_n of_o the_o school_n respect_v immedate_o increated_a excellency_n and_o latria_n and_o religion_n be_v all_o one_o exhibeatur_fw-la and_o if_o saint_n and_o angel_n may_v be_v worship_v with_o religious_a worship_n they_o may_v be_v serve_v with_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_n and_o if_o they_o answer_v that_o worship_n of_o saint_n be_v a_o material_a action_n of_o religion_n this_o answer_n be_v confute_v by_o the_o schoolman_n themselves_o who_o also_o affirm_v that_o the_o worship_n of_o saint_n etc._n etc._n be_v a_o act_n of_o dulia_n est_fw-la and_o not_o of_o religion_n or_o latria_n the_o place_n object_v out_o of_o s._n augustin_n c._n faust._n manich._n li._n 20._o c._n 2_o 1_o be_v make_v to_o speak_v that_o by_o the_o adversary_n which_o the_o holy_a father_n intend_v not_o for_o he_o term_v not_o the_o honour_n exhibit_v by_o the_o true_a church_n to_o the_o person_n of_o martyr_n religious_a but_o he_o say_v only_o populus_fw-la christianus_n memorias_fw-la martyrum_fw-la religiosa_fw-la solemnitate_fw-la concelebrat_fw-la christian_n people_n celebrate_v the_o memorial_n of_o martyr_n with_o religious_a solemnity_n and_o then_o expound_v himself_o in_o the_o progress_n of_o the_o chapter_n
for_o imitation_n romist_n also_o have_v yet_o a_o far_a slight_n in_o their_o checkstone_n trick_n of_o bead_n forsooth_o to_o bless_v and_o sanctify_v they_o by_o the_o touch_n of_o relic_n or_o by_o the_o pope_n benediction_n that_o such_o trash_n may_v be_v sell_v the_o dear_a by_o their_o petty_a chapman_n the_o six_o point_n the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n jesuit_fw-la your_o excellent_a majesty_n submit_v your_o judgement_n unto_o god_n express_a word_n do_v firm_o believe_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v true_o present_a in_o the_o most_o venerable_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n which_o doctrine_n do_v natural_o and_o necessary_o infer_v whatsoever_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v as_o matter_n of_o faith_n concern_v the_o manner_n of_o his_o presence_n answer_n his_o sacred_a majesty_n a_o true_a defendor_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a faith_n to_o his_o immortal_a praise_n submit_v his_o judgement_n in_o this_o and_o in_o all_o other_o article_n to_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n reveal_v from_o heaven_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o external_o preach_v and_o pen_v by_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n 〈◊〉_d and_o concern_v the_o sacred_a eucharist_n he_o firm_o believe_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a use_n thereof_o the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v true_o real_o and_o effectual_o present_v and_o communicate_v to_o all_o faithful_a and_o worthy_a receiver_n but_o that_o the_o romish_a doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n to_o wit_n that_o after_o consecration_n the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v abolish_v and_o the_o shape_n accident_n and_o quantity_n thereof_o only_o remain_v or_o that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v enclose_v substantial_o and_o corporal_o under_o the_o accidental_a form_n before_o participation_n or_o that_o dog_n and_o swine_n true_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n sit_fw-la he_o can_v believe_v until_o demonstration_n be_v make_v that_o this_o faith_n be_v teach_v by_o god_n express_a word_n and_o be_v ancient_o believe_v by_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n jesuit_fw-la to_o declare_v this_o and_o together_o answer_v a_o objection_n much_o urge_v by_o some_o protestant_n that_o they_o believe_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o say_v they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v the_o manner_n that_o not_o be_v express_v in_o scripture_n answer_n when_o the_o substance_n of_o a_o point_n be_v reveal_v and_o the_o distinct_a and_o particular_a manner_n conceal_v it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o believe_v the_o former_a without_o search_v into_o the_o latter_a and_o not_o only_o some_o protestant_n but_o the_o father_n also_o and_o some_o learned_a pontifician_n deliver_v thus_o much_o concern_v the_o sacred_a eucharist_n bandinus_n potest_fw-la and_o the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n 〈◊〉_d say_v touch_v the_o manner_n of_o conversion_n in_o the_o sacrament_n some_o affirm_v one_o way_n and_o some_o another_o etc._n etc._n we_o say_v with_o s._n augustine_n this_o mystery_n be_v safe_o believe_v but_o not_o with_o safety_n search_v into_o cyrill_n etc._n of_o alexandria_n we_o ought_v firm_o to_o believe_v the_o holy_a mystery_n but_o let_v we_o never_o in_o matter_n thus_o sublime_a so_o much_o as_o imagine_v to_o utter_v the_o manner_n how_o and_o again_o the_o manner_n how_o this_o be_v do_v can_v neither_o be_v conceive_v by_o the_o mind_n nor_o express_v by_o the_o tongue_n theophilact_n ignorat_fw-la when_o we_o hear_v these_o word_n of_o christ_n unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n we_o ought_v firm_o to_o believe_v the_o same_o and_o not_o inquire_v after_o what_o manner_n and_o with_o these_o agree_v calvin_n pateat_fw-la sup_v ephes._n 5.32_o jesuit_fw-la we_o must_v note_v that_o man_n be_v bind_v firm_o to_o believe_v the_o manner_n of_o a_o mystery_n reveal_v when_o the_o same_o belong_v to_o the_o substance_n thereof_o so_o that_o reject_v the_o manner_n we_o reject_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n this_o be_v evident_a and_o may_v be_v declare_v by_o the_o example_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v that_o in_o christ_n jesus_n the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n be_v so_o unite_v that_o god_n be_v true_o man_n and_o man_n be_v very_o god_n the_o manner_n of_o this_o mystery_n be_v ineffable_a and_o incomprehensible_a yet_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v three_o thing_n concern_v it_o which_o if_o we_o deny_v we_o deny_v the_o mystery_n in_o substance_n howsoever_o we_o may_v retain_v the_o same_o in_o word_n first_o that_o this_o union_n be_v not_o only_o metaphorical_a by_o affection_n as_o two_o person_n that_o be_v great_a friend_n may_v true_o be_v say_v to_o be_v all_o one_o but_o 4._o also_o true_a and_o real_a second_o this_o real_a union_n of_o nature_n be_v substantial_a 5._o and_o not_o accidental_a so_o that_o thereby_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n be_v not_o only_o accidental_o perfect_v by_o receive_v excellent_a participation_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n power_n wisdom_n and_o majesty_n but_o also_o substantial_o the_o very_a fullness_n of_o the_o godhead_n dwell_v corporal_o and_o substantial_o in_o he_o three_o this_o substantial_a 6._o union_n be_v not_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n so_o that_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n become_v one_o and_o the_o same_o nature_n as_o eutiches_n teach_v but_o hypostatical_a whereby_o god_n and_o man_n become_v one_o and_o the_o same_o person_n these_o particular_n about_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o incarnation_n though_o high_a and_o subtle_a and_o imcomprehensible_a to_o reason_n christian_n may_v and_o must_v believe_v because_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n and_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n in_o general_a counsel_n though_o the_o vulgar_a be_v not_o bind_v explicit_o to_o know_v they_o answer_n when_o the_o distinct_a and_o special_a manner_n be_v reveal_v and_o belong_v to_o the_o form_n and_o be_v of_o a_o article_n we_o be_v oblige_v to_o inquire_v and_o firm_o to_o believe_v the_o same_o according_a to_o the_o instance_n give_v about_o the_o personal_a union_n but_o when_o the_o same_o be_v not_o distinct_o and_o plain_o reveal_v nor_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n it_o be_v more_o safe_a according_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o father_n 6._o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o that_o which_o be_v abstruse_a and_o hide_a than_o to_o be_v curious_a beyond_o our_o model_n exod._n 19_o 17._o pro._n 25.27_o act._n 1.7_o rom._n 12.3_o 1._o cor._n 4.6_o col._n 2.18_o touch_v thing_n inscrutable_a s._n chrysostome_n say_v 76._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v better_a to_o be_v sober_o ignorant_a than_o naughty_o intelligent_a s._n hierom_n eustoch_n melius_fw-la est_fw-la aliquid_fw-la nescire_fw-la securè_fw-la quam_fw-la cum_fw-la periculo_fw-la discere_fw-la it_o be_v better_a to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o some_o thing_n with_o safety_n 〈◊〉_d to_o seek_v to_o learn_v they_o with_o peril_n s._n augustine_n 7._o melior_fw-la est_fw-la fidelis_fw-la ignorantia_fw-la quam_fw-la temeraria_fw-la scientia_fw-la and_o justine_n martyr_n fid_fw-we it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o every_o prudent_a and_o pious_a man_n in_o matter_n divine_a sometime_o to_o give_v the_o wall_n to_o that_o which_o exceed_v his_o model_n s._n athanasius_n serap_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o very_a cherubim_n vail_v their_o face_n when_o it_o be_v come_v thus_o far_o saluianus_n provide_v in_o like_a manner_n say_v sacriligae_fw-la temeritatis_fw-la quoddam_fw-la genus_fw-la est_fw-la si_fw-la plus_fw-la scire_fw-la cupias_fw-la quam_fw-la sinaris_fw-la it_o be_v sacrilegious_a temeritie_n to_o covet_v to_o know_v that_o which_o thou_o be_v not_o permit_v but_o the_o question_n of_o theology_n which_o be_v de_fw-fr modo_fw-la concern_v the_o distinct_a manner_n in_o many_o case_n want_v sufficient_a ground_n in_o divine_a revelation_n to_o unfold_v they_o and_o therefore_o in_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n humble_a silence_n be_v more_o safe_a than_o temerarious_a definition_n jesuit_fw-la in_o this_o sort_n we_o say_v that_o the_o manner_n how_o our_o saviour_n body_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o last_o supper_n must_v be_v believe_v and_o may_v not_o be_v deny_v as_o far_o as_o it_o concern_v the_o very_a life_n be_v and_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n reveal_v which_o mystery_n in_o substance_n be_v that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v present_a in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o the_o priest_n minister_v thereof_o demonstrate_v what_o seem_v bread_n may_v true_o say_v thereof_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o suppose_a as_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o mystery_n i_o infer_v that_o two_o catholic_a doctrine_n concern_v the_o manner_n of_o this_o mystery_n
none_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n maintain_v romish_n transubstantiation_n and_o i_o have_v not_o observe_v one_o express_a testimony_n produce_v by_o romist_n wherein_o the_o primative_a father_n nay_o where_o damascene_fw-la 6._o or_o theophilact_n affirm_v that_o the_o whole_a material_a substance_n and_o form_n essential_a of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v destroy_v the_o bare_a accident_n and_o quantity_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v or_o that_o the_o abstract_a figure_n and_o quality_n of_o those_o creature_n be_v receive_v into_o the_o mouth_n and_o stomach_n and_o be_v taste_v feel_v and_o confer_v nourishment_n without_o any_o earthly_a matter_n conjoin_v to_o they_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a many_o father_n affirm_v that_o after_o consecration_n bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v theodoret_n etc._n say_v that_o they_o lose_v not_o their_o proper_a nature_n but_o remain_v after_o they_o be_v sanctify_v in_o their_o former_a essence_n figure_n and_o kind_a gelasius_n 565._o say_v esse_fw-la non_fw-la desinit_fw-la substantia_fw-la vel_fw-la natura_fw-la panis_fw-la &_o vini_fw-la the_o substance_n or_o nature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n cease_v not_o to_o be_v bertram_z 38._o say_v secundam_fw-la creaturarum_fw-la substantiam_fw-la quod_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la ante_fw-la consecrationem_fw-la hoc_fw-la &_o postea_fw-la consistunt_fw-la according_a to_o the_o substance_n of_o creature_n they_o persist_v the_o same_o before_o and_o after_o consecration_n ireneus_fw-la 34._o teach_v that_o bread_n which_o be_v from_o the_o earth_n receive_v divine_a calling_n or_o sanctification_n be_v not_o common_a bread_n but_o the_o eucharist_n consist_v of_o two_o several_a thing_n or_o matter_n one_o earthly_a and_o the_o other_o celestial_a saint_n chrysostome_n etc._n before_o sanctification_n we_o call_v it_o bread_n only_o but_o when_o divine_a grace_n have_v sanctify_v it_o it_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o name_n of_o bread_n and_o be_v count_v worthy_a of_o the_o appellation_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n although_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n remain_v in_o it_o still_o damascene_fw-la 14._o say_v as_o a_o fiery_a coal_n be_v wood_n and_o fire_n so_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n be_v not_o only_a bread_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o bread_n unite_v to_o the_o divinity_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o when_o fire_n be_v unite_v to_o a_o coal_n that_o the_o material_a substance_n of_o wood_n remain_v at_o least_o in_o part_n the_o adversary_n in_o answer_n to_o theoderit_fw-la and_o gelasius_n pretend_v that_o these_o father_n by_o the_o word_n substance_n nature_n and_o kind_a understand_v only_o the_o natural_a quality_n and_o accident_n which_o flow_v from_o the_o nature_n and_o essence_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o he_o yield_v a_o reason_n say_v that_o in_o ordinary_a speech_n the_o natural_a property_n and_o quality_n of_o thing_n be_v term_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n etc._n etc._n but_o this_o answer_n be_v insufficient_a because_o it_o may_v perhaps_o salve_v the_o objection_n ground_v upon_o the_o word_n nature_n but_o the_o father_n affirm_v also_o that_o the_o sacramental_a sign_n remain_v in_o their_o essence_n substance_n and_o kind_a and_o they_o add_v far_o that_o they_o may_v be_v sensible_o taste_v and_o feel_v 〈◊〉_d and_o have_v force_n of_o nourish_v the_o body_n and_o that_o they_o be_v compound_v of_o many_o corn_n and_o of_o many_o grape_n 26._o which_o make_v one_o substantial_a body_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n now_o these_o thing_n can_v true_o be_v say_v of_o the_o naked_a shape_n and_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n suspend_v and_o divide_v from_o their_o material_a substance_n beside_o the_o father_n eutich_n deliver_v the_o foresay_a doctrine_n to_o prove_v the_o verity_n and_o distinction_n of_o the_o two_o substantial_a nature_n in_o christ_n by_o make_v a_o comparison_n between_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n and_o the_o two_o nature_n in_o christ_n person_n but_o if_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n cease_v and_o be_v change_v into_o the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n than_o the_o former_a comparison_n will_v rather_o confirm_v the_o false_a belief_n of_o the_o heretic_n than_o maintain_v the_o orthodoxal_a faith_n of_o christ_n humanity_n remain_v even_o after_o his_o ascension_n for_o the_o heretic_n may_v infer_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n two_o error_n about_o the_o humane_a nature_n of_o christ._n first_o that_o as_o in_o the_o eucharist_n there_o be_v only_o the_o outward_a 〈◊〉_d shape_n and_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o not_o the_o real_a substance_n even_o so_o in_o christ_n there_o be_v the_o shape_n and_o form_n of_o flesh_n but_o not_o the_o very_a nature_n second_o even_o as_o in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o essential_a form_n and_o material_a substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v swallow_v up_o and_o convert_v into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n so_o likewise_o after_o christ_n ascension_n the_o humane_a nature_n be_v absorb_v and_o convert_v into_o the_o deity_n jesuit_fw-la jesuit_o 4._o the_o seem_a repugnancy_n this_o mystery_n have_v with_o sense_n shall_v incline_v christian_n the_o soon_o to_o believe_v it_o the_o former_a proof_n of_o transubstantiation_n may_v satisfy_v be_v this_o mystery_n easy_a and_o not_o accompany_v with_o many_o seem_a absurdity_n and_o repugnance_n against_o sense_n 〈◊〉_d these_o four_o first_o that_o a_o body_n as_o big_a as_o our_o saviour_n remain_v still_o true_o corpulent_a in_o itself_o shall_v be_v contain_v within_o the_o compass_n of_o a_o round_a host_n scarce_o a_o inch_n long_a and_o broad_a second_o that_o a_o body_n so_o glorious_a shall_v be_v combine_v unto_o corruptible_a element_n and_o so_o make_v subject_a unto_o the_o indignity_n and_o obscenity_n that_o may_v befall_v unto_o they_o three_o that_o the_o same_o body_n may_v be_v in_o heaven_n and_o on_o earth_n in_o innumerable_a place_n at_o once_o four_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n be_v convert_v into_o christ_n body_n the_o sole_a accident_n remain_v by_o themselves_o perform_v the_o whole_a office_n of_o substance_n no_o less_o than_o if_o it_o be_v present_a even_o to_o the_o nutrition_n of_o man_n body_n these_o difficulty_n so_o scandalize_v protestant_n that_o some_o condemn_v transubstantiation_n as_o impossible_a yea_o as_o absurd_a ridiculous_a barbarous_a other_o profess_v they_o can_v subdue_v 3._o their_o understand_n to_o believe_v it_o as_o a_o 〈◊〉_d of_o faith_n to_o give_v full_a satisfaction_n in_o this_o point_n i_o set_v down_o this_o proposition_n that_o these_o seem_a absurdity_n shall_v not_o avert_v but_o rather_o incline_v a_o true_a christian_a mind_n to_o believe_v this_o mystery_n in_o proof_n whereof_o i_o present_v unto_o your_o majesty_n these_o three_o consideration_n answer_n we_o measure_v not_o supernatural_a doctrine_n by_o humane_a sense_n or_o reason_n neither_o can_v any_o seem_a repugnance_n of_o repute_a philosophy_n to_o divine_a revelation_n hinder_v our_o faith_n where_o the_o holy_a ghost_n command_v we_o to_o believe_v 17._o as_o appear_v in_o the_o article_n of_o the_o sacred_a trinity_n incarnation_n resurrection_n etc._n etc._n est_fw-la quidem_fw-la de_fw-fr communibus_fw-la sensibus_fw-la sapere_fw-la in_o dei_fw-la rebus_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o testimonium_fw-la very_fw-la non_fw-la in_o adiutorium_fw-la falsi_fw-la quod_fw-la sit_fw-la secundum_fw-la divinam_fw-la non_fw-la contrà_fw-la divinam_fw-la dispositionem_fw-la say_v tertullian_n 18._o we_o must_v have_v understanding_n in_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n out_o of_o common_a sense_n but_o this_o must_v serve_v to_o testify_v truth_n and_o not_o to_o patronise_v error_n according_a to_o divine_a disposition_n revelation_n not_o against_o it_o so_o far_o as_o sense_n and_o reason_n be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o divine_a verity_n but_o subseruient_fw-fr we_o may_v give_v credit_n to_o they_o and_o every_o good_a christian_n say_v s._n augustine_n ubicunque_fw-la invenerit_fw-la veritatem_fw-la domini_fw-la svi_fw-la intelligat_fw-la esse_fw-la wheresoever_o he_o find_v verity_n teach_v either_o by_o nature_n or_o grace_n must_v understand_v that_o it_o be_v his_o master_n the_o question_n between_o the_o romist_n and_o we_o be_v not_o whether_o if_o transubstantiation_n be_v reveal_v by_o god_n we_o may_v notwithstanding_o therefore_o refuse_v to_o believe_v it_o because_o the_o matter_n be_v difficile_a to_o be_v conceive_v or_o because_o it_o have_v many_o seem_a repugnance_n to_o sense_n for_o if_o they_o be_v able_a to_o demonstrate_v the_o first_o we_o must_v renounce_v the_o latter_a but_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o transubstantiation_n have_v no_o certain_a and_o manifest_a ground_n in_o divine_a revelation_n and_o many_o repugnance_n to_o common_a sense_n and_o reason_n and_o beside_o be_v express_o repugnant_a to_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o be_v to_o believe_v the_o same_o first_o the_o holy_a scripture_n call_v consecrate_v wine_n the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n and_o consecrate_a bread_n by_o the_o name_n of_o very_a bread_n
probability_n be_v allege_v in_o favour_n of_o real_a presence_n by_o consubstantiation_n than_o for_o transubstantiation_n last_o the_o mystical_a union_n between_o christ_n and_o his_o member_n be_v ineffable_a and_o the_o manner_n incomprehensible_a and_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n teach_v a_o real_a donation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o a_o mystical_a conjunction_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o the_o soul_n of_o faithful_a receiver_n and_o that_o dead_a and_o corruptible_a creature_n can_v be_v a_o mean_n and_o instrument_n hereof_o be_v a_o great_a mystery_n of_o godliness_n incredible_a to_o profane_a person_n and_o therefore_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o believe_v this_o doctrine_n may_v just_o require_v that_o this_o mystery_n shall_v not_o be_v manifest_v before_o infidel_n and_o other_o infirm_a christian_n until_o they_o be_v first_o instruct_v in_o the_o rudiment_n of_o christianity_n jesuit_fw-la yea_o the_o father_n do_v not_o fear_v to_o declare_v unto_o catechuman_n this_o sacrament_n so_o far_o as_o it_o be_v commemorative_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o passion_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o treatise_n of_o saint_n augustine_n upon_o saint_n john_n make_v before_o catechuman_n out_o of_o which_o treatise_n protestant_n for_o their_o mere_a commemorative_n presence_n allege_v many_o sentence_n to_o little_a purpose_n for_o he_o there_o explicate_v spiritual_a manducation_n by_o faith_n and_o he_o exclude_v the_o gross_a imagination_n of_o eat_v christ_n body_n in_o his_o proper_a shape_n tear_v it_o in_o piece_n with_o the_o tooth_n but_o deny_v not_o yea_o rather_o insinuate_v another_o kind_n of_o spiritual_a manducation_n not_o only_o by_o faith_n but_o by_o real_a sumption_n though_o to_o conceal_v the_o mystery_n from_o catechuman_n he_o speak_v not_o so_o clear_o thereof_o wherefore_o as_o the_o palm_n tree_n the_o heavy_a the_o weight_n be_v that_o be_v lay_v upon_o it_o the_o more_o it_o rise_v upward_o as_o it_o be_v joy_v in_o difficulty_n so_o a_o true_a catholic_a christian_n feel_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n many_o seem_a absurdity_n that_o press_v carnal_a imagination_n to_o the_o ground_n grow_v thereby_o more_o strong_a to_o believe_v it_o embrace_v these_o difficulty_n as_o manifest_a sign_n that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v believe_v by_o the_o primitive_a apostolical_a church_n on_o the_o other_o side_n protestant_n find_v the_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n by_o faith_n to_o be_v devoid_a of_o such_o difficulty_n may_v by_o the_o very_a lightness_n thereof_o suspect_v it_o be_v not_o the_o doctrine_n which_o the_o father_n conceal_v from_o jnfidell_n as_o more_o absurd_a to_o humane_a imagination_n than_o any_o other_o mystery_n of_o christian_a religion_n answer_n you_o object_n that_o the_o father_n declare_v to_o catechuman_n that_o be_v to_o novice_n in_o christianity_n a_o commemorative_a presence_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n but_o not_o a_o corporal_a presence_n by_o transubstantiation_n and_o from_o hence_o you_o will_v infer_v that_o the_o father_n hold_v two_o kind_n of_o presence_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o one_o sole_o spiritual_a by_o intellectual_a apprehension_n the_o other_o corporal_a by_o real_a sumption_n of_o christ_n body_n into_o the_o mouth_n and_o stomach_n of_o the_o receiver_n and_o you_o pretend_v that_o s._n augustine_n be_v of_o this_o judgement_n but_o you_o must_v remember_v that_o you_o be_v not_o now_o to_o deal_v with_o adversary_n which_o will_v credit_n your_o bare_a word_n and_o proof_n you_o have_v none_o therefore_o i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o father_n teach_v no_o other_o kind_n of_o presence_n to_o they_o which_o be_v baptize_v and_o receive_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n than_o to_o catechuman_n or_o unbaptised_a christian_n although_o they_o instruct_v the_o one_o sort_n more_o full_o than_o the_o other_o second_o s._n augustine_n teach_v not_o that_o christ_n body_n be_v receive_v invisible_o insensible_o and_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o spirit_n by_o the_o mouth_n and_o stomach_n of_o each_o communicant_a but_o he_o teach_v only_o two_o kind_n of_o manducation_n in_o the_o sacrament_n one_o both_o corporal_a and_o spiritual_a wherein_o the_o body_n of_o man_n receive_v the_o external_a element_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o the_o soul_n receive_v the_o true_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o faith_n sacramenti_fw-la the_o other_o corporeal_a only_a wherein_o the_o receiver_n partake_v the_o outward_a sign_n and_o not_o the_o thing_n signify_v panem_fw-la domini_fw-la non_fw-la panem_fw-la dominum_fw-la fuerit_fw-la the_o visible_a sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n etc._n but_o not_o his_o very_a body_n and_o he_o affirm_v not_o upon_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o s._n john_n that_o a_o malicious_a sinner_n continue_v such_o receive_v the_o very_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ._n three_o protestant_n believe_v not_o only_o a_o commemorative_n but_o also_o a_o exhibitive_a presence_n of_o the_o thing_n signify_v together_o with_o the_o outward_a sign_n according_a to_o the_o manner_n former_o declare_v pag._n 405._o and_o this_o presence_n be_v mystical_a and_o such_o as_o may_v seem_v incredible_a to_o unbelcever_n because_o of_o sundry_a difficulty_n repugnant_a to_o common_a sense_n to_o wit_n that_o christ_n flesh_n by_o the_o unspeakable_a power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n shall_v be_v after_o a_o sort_n incorporate_v into_o the_o soul_n and_o that_o corruptible_a and_o dead_a creature_n shall_v be_v elevate_v and_o make_v effectual_a instrument_n to_o apply_v and_o communicate_v jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o virtue_n of_o his_o death_n to_o faithful_a communicant_n jesvit_n 2._o consideration_n this_o consideration_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o difficulty_n object_v against_o this_o mystery_n which_o be_v such_o as_o a_o christian_a in_o honour_n shall_v neglect_v they_o for_o if_o it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o a_o prudent_a and_o intelligent_a man_n not_o to_o permit_v imagination_n to_o prevail_v against_o his_o reason_n what_o a_o disgrace_n be_v it_o for_o a_o christian_a that_o his_o faith_n shall_v be_v conquer_v by_o these_o kind_n of_o difficulty_n for_o that_o the_o seem_a absurdity_n of_o this_o mystery_n be_v not_o in_o respect_n of_o natural_a reason_n but_o mere_o of_o jmagination_n may_v hence_o appear_v that_o some_o natural_a truth_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n as_o difficile_a and_o incredible_a which_o will_v be_v see_v if_o we_o compare_v the_o four_o above_o mention_a difficulty_n with_o the_o difficulty_n some_o truth_n evident_a in_o nature_n have_v answer_n when_o difficulty_n object_v arise_v from_o experience_n of_o sense_n and_o principle_n of_o nature_n and_o there_o be_v no_o express_a or_o manifest_a word_n of_o god_n sufficient_a to_o move_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o contrary_a it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o each_o intelligent_a and_o prudent_a man_n rather_o to_o credit_n that_o which_o be_v apparent_a to_o sense_n and_o common_a reason_n elucet_fw-la than_o to_o believe_v paradox_n upon_o no_o true_a ground_n and_o reason_n jesuit_fw-la first_o we_o can_v imagine_v that_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v contain_v in_o the_o compass_n of_o a_o small_a host_n but_o it_o be_v not_o more_o incredible_a that_o in_o a_o thing_n of_o small_a quantititie_n for_o example_n the_o wing_n of_o a_o fly_n there_o shall_v be_v so_o many_o part_n as_o unfold_v and_o lay_v together_o will_v cover_v the_o whole_a face_n of_o the_o world_n both_o of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v demonstrable_a in_o philosophy_n that_o even_o in_o the_o wing_n of_o a_o fly_n there_o be_v so_o many_o part_n as_o broad_a and_o long_o as_o the_o wing_n though_o still_o thin_a and_o thin_a that_o almighty_a god_n separate_v and_o unfold_n they_o may_v therewith_o cover_v the_o whole_a world_n for_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o some_o finite_a number_n of_o such_o part_n so_o separate_v each_o of_o they_o as_o long_o and_o as_o broad_a as_o a_o fly_n wing_n will_v cover_v the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n certain_a also_o it_o be_v that_o the_o wing_n of_o the_o fly_n be_v still_o divisible_a into_o more_o and_o more_o such_o part_n so_o that_o no_o finite_a number_n be_v assignable_a but_o god_n may_v still_o separate_v from_o that_o wing_n a_o great_a number_n without_o any_o end_n therefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o in_o the_o wing_n of_o a_o fly_n there_o be_v so_o much_o quantity_n as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o cover_v the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n both_o of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n if_o god_n will_v but_o separate_v and_o unfold_v the_o same_o be_v not_o this_o secret_a of_o philosophy_n as_o incredible_a to_o carnal_a imagination_n as_o the_o be_v of_o christ_n body_n within_o a_o small_a host_n we_o that_o can_v comprehend_v thing_n we_o see_v with_o eye_n and_o feel_v with_o hand_n certain_o we_o shall_v have_v much_o ado_n
spiritual_a manducation_n alone_o without_o sacramental_a if_o the_o former_a illation_n of_o romist_n be_v good_a it_o will_v follow_v likewise_o from_o thence_o that_o receive_v of_o bread_n in_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n institution_n for_o whole_a and_o entire_a christ_n according_a to_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o infinite_a person_n be_v in_o the_o blood_n alone_o if_o the_o popish_a doctrine_n of_o concomitancie_n be_v true_a and_o if_o this_o be_v grant_v as_o of_o necessity_n it_o must_v than_o romist_n may_v mangle_v and_o transform_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n at_o their_o pleasure_n second_o the_o end_n and_o fruit_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v either_o common_a to_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n with_o other_o mean_n of_o grace_n abscedat_fw-la or_o else_o proper_a to_o it_o only_o to_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o recognition_n of_o christ_n passion_n and_o by_o faith_n in_o the_o same_o may_v be_v a_o effect_n of_o the_o gospel_n preach_v joh._n 6._o 54._o but_o to_o eat_v the_o same_o flesh_n and_o blood_n communicate_v more_o distinct_o and_o effectual_o by_o visible_a seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v a_o end_n and_o fruit_n peculiar_a and_o proper_a to_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n 1._o cor._n 10._o 16._o a_o man_n may_v have_v the_o same_o inheritance_n bestow_v on_o he_o by_o the_o word_n and_o writing_n of_o the_o donor_n yet_o when_o the_o same_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o seal_n of_o the_o donor_n the_o donation_n be_v of_o great_a validity_n and_o if_o by_o law_n or_o custom_n two_o seal_n shall_v be_v appoint_v the_o apposition_n of_o one_o be_v not_o of_o equal_a force_n and_o validity_n to_o the_o apposition_n of_o both_o so_o likewise_o because_o the_o son_n of_o god_n make_v choice_n of_o two_o outward_a sign_n namely_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o represent_v and_o apply_v his_o passion_n and_o oblation_n and_o withal_o command_v the_o common_a use_n and_o reception_n of_o both_o say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o and_o also_o annex_v a_o special_a promise_n and_o blessing_n to_o both_o these_o outward_a sign_n joint_o use_v therefore_o the_o use_n &_o sumption_n of_o one_o of_o these_o without_o the_o other_o can_v have_v so_o great_a force_n altera_fw-la to_o apply_v the_o effect_n &_o fruit_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o the_o use_n &_o reception_n of_o both_o and_o as_o in_o concause_n or_o partial_a cause_n the_o action_n of_o the_o one_o can_v produce_v the_o effect_n without_o the_o other_o and_o as_o when_o two_o key_n be_v provide_v to_o open_v a_o lock_n the_o same_o be_v not_o open_v by_o one_o of_o they_o only_o so_o likewise_o christ_n jesus_n have_v institute_v and_o sanctify_v two_o sign_n for_o the_o more_o proportionable_a and_o effectual_a application_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n it_o be_v gross_a presumption_n in_o man_n to_o mutilate_v and_o cut_v off_o a_o part_n of_o that_o body_n which_o the_o wisdom_n of_o christ_n have_v frame_v in_o due_a and_o beautiful_a proportion_n and_o to_o divide_v that_o which_o god_n have_v join_v together_o and_o without_o warrant_n from_o god_n reveal_v word_n to_o attribute_v a_o total_a effect_n to_o a_o partial_a mean_n and_o cause_n jesuit_fw-la hence_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o without_o any_o just_a cause_n some_o protestant_n inveigh_v against_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n as_o 13._o profess_v to_o contradict_v the_o precept_n of_o christ_n because_o it_o decree_v that_o the_o sacrament_n may_v be_v lawful_o give_v under_o one_o kind_n non_fw-la obstante_fw-la quod_fw-la christus_fw-la in_o utraque_fw-la specie_fw-la illud_fw-la instituerit_fw-la &_o apostolis_n administraverit_fw-la notwithstanding_o christ_n institution_n and_o administration_n thereof_o in_o both_o kind_n to_o his_o disciple_n this_o their_o bitterness_n proceed_v from_o zeal_n without_o knowledge_n not_o distinguish_v the_o jnstitution_n of_o god_n from_o his_o precept_n which_o be_v very_o distinct_a for_o the_o precept_n of_o both_o kind_n if_o christ_n give_v any_o do_v bind_v whether_o both_o kind_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o man_n soul_n in_o grace_n or_o no_o but_o the_o jnstitution_n in_o both_o kind_n do_v not_o bind_v further_o than_o the_o thing_n institute_v to_o wit_n communion_n under_o both_o kind_n be_v necessary_a for_o the_o maintain_n of_o spiritual_a life_n for_o which_o one_o kind_n be_v sufficient_a as_o i_o have_v show_v christ_n institution_n of_o both_o kind_n do_v not_o enforce_v the_o use_n of_o both_o if_o god_n shall_v have_v command_v the_o use_n both_o of_o meat_n and_o drink_v every_o man_n shall_v be_v bind_v not_o only_o to_o eat_v but_o also_o to_o drink_v though_o he_o have_v no_o necessity_n thereof_o but_o now_o see_v god_n have_v not_o give_v such_o a_o precept_n a_o man_n that_o can_v live_v by_o meat_n without_o ever_o drink_v be_v not_o bind_v to_o drink_v non_fw-la obstante_fw-la that_o god_n do_v institute_v both_o eat_n and_o drink_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o life_n in_o every_o man_n answer_n the_o council_n of_o constance_n be_v just_o censure_v for_o presume_v to_o alter_v and_o disannul_v the_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n authore_fw-la for_o if_o it_o be_v flagitious_a among_o man_n to_o alter_v and_o contradict_v the_o lawful_a will_n of_o a_o testator_n galat._n 3.15_o shall_v it_o not_o be_v much_o more_o unlawfall_n to_o alter_v the_o testament_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n who_o dispose_v to_o the_o common_a people_n his_o blood_n as_o well_o as_o his_o body_n say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o math._n 26_o 27._o and_o except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o man_n etc._n etc._n joh._n 6.53_o and_o the_o word_n of_o the_o say_a synod_n be_v most_o presumptuous_a etc._n for_o this_o they_o pronounce_v although_o christ_n after_o supper_n institute_v and_o administer_v to_o his_o disciple_n under_o both_o kind_n etc._n etc._n and_o although_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o sacrament_n be_v receive_v of_o believer_n in_o both_o kind_n yet_o notwithstanding_o the_o contrary_a custom_n for_o laic_n to_o receive_v in_o one_o kind_n be_v with_o good_a reason_n bring_v in_o and_o they_o be_v heretic_n which_o hold_v this_o sacrilegious_a or_o unlawful_a but_o what_o be_v these_o man_n in_o comparison_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n if_o man_n may_v thus_o twit_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n what_o shall_v become_v of_o all_o religion_n the_o sole_a and_o total_a rule_n to_o guide_v the_o church_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n be_v christ_n institution_n and_o practice_n record_v by_o the_o evangelist_n and_o testify_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o primitive_a church_n in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n follow_v this_o rule_n as_o some_o of_o our_o learned_a adversary_n ingenious_o confess_v specie_fw-la if_o therefore_o christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o after_o these_o the_o primitive_a church_n administer_v the_o communion_n to_o lay_v people_n in_o both_o kind_n as_o this_o synod_n confess_v and_o on_o the_o contraie_v nothing_o be_v extant_a in_o holy_a writ_n or_o in_o the_o monument_n of_o the_o father_n to_o testify_v that_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n retract_v or_o alter_v this_o first_o practice_n what_o audacious_a sacrilege_n be_v it_o in_o the_o prelate_n of_o constance_n upon_o their_o own_o private_a and_o childish_a plura_fw-la reason_n to_o cancel_v christ_n last_o will_v and_o testament_n and_o to_o violate_v the_o sacred_a precept_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o our_o adversary_n labour_v by_o a_o distinction_n of_o institution_n and_o precept_n to_o plaster_v the_o ulcerous_a doctrine_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o constance_n say_v or_o imply_v that_o although_o christ_n do_v institute_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n in_o two_o kind_n yet_o he_o give_v no_o precept_n for_o the_o use_n of_o it_o in_o two_o kind_n but_o this_o plaster_n of_o sig-leave_n heal_v not_o the_o wound_n for_o there_o be_v both_o a_o institution_n and_o a_o precept_n for_o both_o kind_n and_o more_o express_o for_o the_o cup_n than_o for_o the_o bread_n for_o christ_n say_v express_o and_o literal_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o whereas_o he_o say_v not_o so_o literal_o and_o express_o eat_v you_o all_o of_o this_o beside_o his_o institution_n be_v a_o virtual_a and_o interpretative_a precept_n as_o appear_v by_o s._n paul_n 1_o cor._n 11.23_o and_o christ_n do_v institute_v the_o eucharist_n in_o two_o kind_n that_o people_n may_v receive_v and_o ufe_v it_o in_o two_o kind_n also_o if_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o institution_n prove_v not_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o use_n than_o the_o eucharist_n may_v be_v use_v in_o another_o manner_n i_o mean_v in_o thing_n substantial_a than_o
present_a and_o the_o doctrine_n be_v personal_o pronounce_v to_o they_o alone_o also_o math._n 18.9_o 15.22_o the_o like_a be_v find_v concern_v other_o doctrine_n and_o precept_n and_o yet_o these_o doctrine_n and_o precept_n be_v common_a to_o all_o christian_n the_o romist_n if_o they_o be_v not_o partial_a can_v distinguish_v between_o personal_a precept_n deliver_v to_o the_o apostle_n only_o as_o they_o be_v by_o office_n pastor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o between_o common_a precept_n deliver_v unto_o they_o as_o christian_n and_o as_o they_o represent_v the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o obiectour_n add_v that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o demonstrate_v that_o this_o precept_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o be_v common_a i_o answer_v first_o if_o that_o which_o christ_n say_v to_o the_o apostle_n s._n paul_n speak_v to_o the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o believer_n than_o christ_n word_n utter_v to_o the_o apostle_n be_v common_a but_o the_o first_o be_v true_a 1._o cor._n 11._o 28._o and_o s._n hierome_n omnes_fw-la infer_v upon_o the_o same_o oportet_fw-la coenam_fw-la dominicam_fw-la esse_fw-la communem_fw-la quià_fw-la ille_fw-la omnibus_fw-la discipulis_fw-la suis_fw-la qui_fw-la aderant_fw-la equalitèr_fw-la tradidit_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la the_o lord_n supper_n ought_v to_o be_v common_a because_o christ_n deliver_v the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n equal_o to_o all_o the_o disciple_n that_o be_v present_a second_o if_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n have_v not_o foundation_n in_o christ_n word_n utter_v to_o the_o apostle_n than_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n want_v foundation_n in_o christ_n word_n and_o institution_n and_o if_o it_o have_v not_o foundation_n in_o christ_n word_n than_o it_o want_v all_o foundation_n for_o s._n paul_n ground_n his_o whole_a doctrine_n touch_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n upon_o our_o saviour_n word_n and_o institution_n 1._o cor._n 11.23_o three_o if_o the_o reason_n why_o the_o apostle_n receive_v the_o cup_n be_v because_o they_o be_v priest_n than_o all_o priest_n be_v present_a at_o the_o communion_n aught_o to_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n although_o they_o administer_v not_o but_o this_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n four_o it_o be_v not_o certain_a that_o the_o apostle_n be_v priest_n when_o christ_n ordain_v and_o administer_v the_o eucharist_n for_o that_o they_o be_v not_o priest_n math._n 18._o be_v affirm_v by_o our_o adversary_n 2._o and_o that_o they_o be_v make_v priest_n luke_n 22._o by_o the_o word_n hoc_fw-la facite_fw-la as_o bellarmine_n suares_n henriques_n hosius_n canisius_n etc._n etc._n say_v can_v never_o be_v prove_v for_o what_o force_n be_v there_o in_o hoc_fw-la facite_fw-la to_o conclude_v priestly_a ordination_n and_o if_o hoc_fw-la facite_fw-la prove_v priesthood_n then_o lay_v man_n be_v make_v priest_n when_o the_o word_n do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o be_v speak_v to_o they_o facite_fw-la in_o part_n or_o respective_o hitherto_o we_o have_v find_v nothing_o in_o our_o adversary_n but_o sophistry_n of_o word_n and_o theomachie_n against_o divine_a institution_n and_o apostolical_a tradition_n but_o to_o hold_v correspondence_n with_o the_o rest_n the_o jesuit_n add_v jesuit_fw-la second_o these_o word_n accipite_fw-la manducate_a bibite_fw-la take_v eat_v drink_n be_v certain_o speak_v unto_o the_o same_o person_n and_o they_o run_v so_o together_o in_o rank_n that_o no_o man_n can_v with_o probability_n make_v the_o one_o outrun_v the_o other_o but_o the_o command_n accipite_fw-la which_o signify_v take_v with_o your_o hand_n for_o it_o be_v a_o precept_n distinct_a from_o manducate_a which_o be_v take_v with_o your_o mouth_n be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n only_o not_o unto_o all_o the_o faithful_a else_o we_o must_v say_v that_o all_o communicant_n be_v bind_v to_o take_v the_o consecrate_a bread_n and_o cup_n with_o their_o hand_n who_o ever_o hear_v of_o such_o a_o precept_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n answer_n this_o argument_n true_o propound_v be_v all_o person_n command_v to_o eat_v be_v command_v to_o take_v none_o but_o the_o apostle_n be_v command_v to_o take_v for_o if_o lay_v man_n be_v command_v to_o take_v they_o must_v always_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n in_o their_o hand_n ergo_fw-la none_o but_o the_o apostle_n be_v command_v to_o eat_v this_o objection_n fight_v against_o lie_v man_n receive_n in_o one_o kind_n which_o until_o 〈◊〉_d we_o suppose_v papist_n have_v permit_v but_o it_o seem_v that_o they_o will_v have_v the_o whole_a use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n depend_v upon_o the_o pope_n devotion_n and_o pleasure_n but_o touch_v the_o argument_n i_o deny_v the_o assumption_n for_o lie_v man_n be_v command_v to_o take_v that_o be_v to_o receive_v at_o least_o into_o their_o mouth_n and_o then_o to_o manducate_v that_o be_v to_o chew_v or_o swallow_v and_o to_o let_v the_o element_n receive_v pass_v into_o their_o stomach_n palatum_fw-la to_o take_v with_o the_o hand_n be_v agreeable_a to_o christ_n manner_n of_o administration_n etc._n and_o it_o be_v use_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o the_o same_o be_v not_o of_o absolute_a necessity_n for_o some_o communicant_n may_v want_v hand_n or_o the_o natural_a use_n thereof_o but_o to_o receive_v into_o the_o mouth_n and_o then_o to_o manducate_v or_o drink_v be_v command_v the_o jesuit_n imagine_v that_o all_o take_n be_v by_o the_o hand_n and_o thus_o he_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v neither_o good_a grammarian_n nor_o divine_a virgil_n say_v illos_fw-la porticibus_fw-la rex_fw-la accipiebat_fw-la in_o amplis_fw-la where_o accipio_fw-la be_v to_o entertain_v s._n paul_n say_v per_fw-la quem_fw-la accepimus_fw-la gratiam_fw-la rom._n 1._o 5._o by_o who_o we_o have_v receive_v grace_n and_o apostleship_n ca._n 8.15_o you_o have_v receive_v 〈◊〉_d the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n the_o angel_n say_v joseph_n thou_o son_n of_o david_n fear_v not_o to_o take_v mary_n thy_o wife_n math._n 1._o 20._o his_o bishopric_n let_v another_o man_n take_v act._n 1.20_o jesuit_fw-la the_o three_o reason_n be_v because_o there_o be_v a_o peculiar_a and_o personal_a cause_n why_o christ_n shall_v give_v that_o particular_a councillor_n admonition_n for_o the_o imperative_fw-it word_n do_v not_o ever_o signify_v a_o precept_n but_o often_o a_o advice_n or_o a_o permission_n as_o your_o majesty_n well_o know_v to_o his_o apostle_n at_o that_o time_n to_o wit_n because_o he_o will_v have_v they_o all_o not_o only_o drink_v of_o his_o blood_n but_o also_o will_v have_v they_o drink_v of_o the_o same_o cup_n without_o fill_v and_o consecrate_v the_o same_o anew_o this_o be_v more_o manifest_a in_o the_o protestant_n opinion_n who_o think_v the_o chalice_n whereof_o christ_n say_v in_o s._n matthew_n bibite_fw-la ex_fw-la hoc_fw-la omnes_fw-la 26.27_o to_o be_v the_o same_o whereof_o he_o say_v in_o s._n luke_n accipite_fw-la dividite_fw-la 18._o inter_fw-la vos_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la bibam_fw-la amplius_fw-la de_fw-la hoc_fw-la genimine_fw-la vitis_fw-la for_o this_o be_v suppose_v the_o word_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o import_v the_o same_o as_o divide_v this_o cup_n among_o you_o but_o divide_v this_o cup_n among_o you_o be_v a_o personal_a precept_n give_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n import_v that_o every_o one_o shall_v drink_v but_o a_o part_n of_o that_o cup_n and_o that_o also_o in_o such_o measure_n as_o the_o cup_n without_o new_a fill_n and_o consecration_n may_v suffice_v for_o all_o to_o drink_v thereof_o what_o all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n or_o all_o christian_n that_o shall_v succeed_v they_o to_o the_o world_n end_n christ_n never_o intend_v that_o one_o cup_n for_o all_o nor_o be_v it_o indeed_o divide_v or_o part_v with_o we_o but_o the_o apostle_n drink_v it_o up_o among_o they_o wherefore_o refer_v my_o say_n to_o your_o majesty_n learned_a censure_n i_o conclude_v that_o to_o i_o it_o seem_v clear_a that_o the_o precept_n or_o rather_o direction_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o be_v but_o personal_a confine_v unto_o the_o number_n of_o all_o there_o then_o present_a answer_n the_o precept_n drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o say_v the_o jesuit_n be_v personal_a and_o concern_v the_o apostle_n only_o because_o our_o saviour_n command_v they_o all_o to_o drink_v of_o the_o same_o cup_n without_o fill_v and_o consecrate_v it_o anew_o but_o if_o drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o have_v import_v a_o general_a duty_n than_o christ_n can_v not_o have_v stint_v they_o to_o one_o single_a cup._n this_o objection_n be_v ground_v upon_o a_o false_a principle_n which_o be_v all_o precept_n be_v personal_a in_o regard_n of_o their_o substance_n wherein_o any_o circumstance_n be_v personal_a nothing_o can_v be_v more_o absurd_a and_o false_a than_o this_o position_n for_o in_o the_o decalogue_n itself_o some_o thing_n be_v personal_a as_o appear_v by_o the_o preface_n exod._n 20.2_o likewise_o in_o many_o general_a or_o common_a
preept_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n some_o personal_a circumstance_n may_v be_v note_v and_o yet_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o commandment_n be_v general_a 1._o cro._n 28.9_o pro._n 30.1.3_o math._n 18.2.3_o joh._n 13.13_o 14._o also_o we_o may_v consider_v a_o twofold_a unity_n of_o the_o cup_n specifical_a and_o individual_a to_o drink_v of_o the_o same_o individual_a cup_n even_o as_o to_o eat_v of_o the_o same_o individual_a lose_v be_v a_o accidental_a circumstance_n but_o to_o drink_v and_o receive_v the_o common_a kind_n to_o wit_n the_o fruit_n of_o the_o wine_n this_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o commandment_n if_o we_o parallel_v the_o objection_n the_o defect_n be_v manifest_o ridiculous_a it_o be_v not_o of_o the_o substance_n of_o christ_n commandment_n that_o lie_v people_n shall_v receive_v consecrate_v bread_n at_o the_o communion_n because_o the_o bread_n which_o christ_n give_v his_o disciple_n be_v of_o one_o individual_a loaf_n but_o the_o bread_n of_o one_o individual_a loaf_n will_v not_o suffice_v all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n therefore_o the_o precept_n of_o receive_v consecrate_v bread_n be_v personal_a and_o concern_v the_o apostle_n only_o now_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v use_v this_o argument_n which_o in_o substance_n be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o jesuit_n he_o have_v in_o my_o opinion_n more_o cause_n to_o blush_v for_o shame_n than_o to_o glory_n before_o the_o presence_n of_o a_o most_o judicious_a and_o learned_a king_n as_o this_o vain_a boaster_n do_v jesuit_fw-la another_o text_n of_o scripture_n some_o urge_v to_o prove_v that_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n be_v command_v to_o wit_n the_o famous_a place_n out_o of_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o s._n john_n except_o you_o 6.54_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o where_o our_o saviour_n under_o the_o penalty_n of_o lose_v eternal_a life_n command_v not_o only_o eat_v but_o also_o drink_v perchance_o your_o majesty_n do_v not_o stand_v much_o upon_o this_o as_o not_o believe_v that_o chapter_n of_o s._n john_n to_o concern_v the_o sacramental_a sumption_n of_o our_o saviour_n flesh_n as_o also_o some_o learned_a catholic_n hold_v not_o withstand_v though_o we_o grant_v that_o chapter_n to_o concern_v the_o eat_n and_o drink_v in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o most_o of_o the_o father_n teach_v yet_o this_o objection_n may_v be_v easy_o satisfy_v by_o the_o former_a principle_n for_o as_o we_o distinguish_v in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o substance_n and_o the_o manner_n the_o substance_n be_v to_o receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n the_o manner_n in_o both_o kind_n by_o formal_a eat_n and_o drink_v so_o the_o same_o distinction_n be_v to_o be_v make_v in_o our_o saviour_n precept_n about_o this_o sacrament_n for_o howsoever_o his_o word_n may_v sound_v of_o the_o manner_n of_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n yet_o his_o intention_n be_v to_o command_v no_o more_o than_o the_o substance_n to_o wit_n that_o we_o real_o receive_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o may_v be_v do_v under_o one_o kind_n this_o be_v make_v clear_a by_o the_o precept_n by_o our_o saviour_n give_v about_o another_o sacrament_n to_o wit_n baptism_n where_o though_o his_o word_n seem_v to_o define_v the_o manner_n yet_o his_o mind_n be_v but_o to_o determine_v the_o substance_n he_o say_v to_o his_o apostle_n baptise_v all_o nation_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n 28.23_o and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o baptise_v signify_v the_o same_o that_o the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v not_o to_o wet_v or_o sprinkle_v with_o water_n but_o to_o put_v and_o plunge_v into_o the_o water_n by_o immersion_n bathe_v they_o in_o water_n in_o which_o respect_n baptism_n be_v term_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o laver_n or_o bath_n of_o the_o renovation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o yet_o 54._o because_o the_o church_n teach_v baptism_n by_o 〈◊〉_d or_o sprinkle_v to_o be_v sufficient_a and_o substantial_a baptism_n no_o less_o than_o baptism_n by_o immersion_n christian_n must_v and_o do_v so_o interpret_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n baptise_v that_o be_v plunge_v into_o the_o water_n all_o nation_n to_o command_v only_o cleanse_v and_o wash_v in_o substance_n not_o the_o manner_n thereof_o by_o immersion_n as_o his_o word_n may_v seem_v to_o import_v and_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n practice_v in_o this_o like_a sort_n the_o word_n unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v of_o his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o be_v preceptive_a no_o further_o than_o they_o signify_v real_a receive_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n not_o the_o manner_n of_o both_o kind_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o commandment_n for_o as_o christ_n give_v this_o precept_n of_o eat_v and_o drink_v only_o to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o may_v have_v life_n in_o we_o so_o likewise_o he_o mean_v to_o command_v the_o same_o no_o further_o than_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o this_o end_n but_o eat_v formal_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o virtual_o and_o implicit_o his_o blood_n as_o contain_v within_o his_o sacred_a body_n suffice_v that_o we_o may_v have_v life_n in_o we_o as_o he_o promise_v in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o that_o eat_v this_o bread_n shall_v live_v for_o 59_o ever_o what_o necessity_n then_o be_v there_o to_o understand_v this_o precept_n of_o formal_a receive_n in_o both_o kind_n but_o further_o i_o add_v the_o coniunctive_a particle_n &_o and_o signify_v disjunctive_o the_o same_o that_o vel_fw-la or_o as_o argentum_fw-la 6._o &_o aurum_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la mihi_fw-la and_o particular_o of_o this_o sacrament_n he_o that_o eat_v and_o drink_v unworthy_o eat_v 11.29_o and_o drink_v damnation_n the_o sense_n be_v disjunctive_a eat_v or_o drink_v unworthy_o in_o this_o sort_n the_o word_n of_o christ_n except_o you_o eat_v and_o drink_v be_v to_o be_v understand_v disjunctive_o except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n or_o drink_v the_o blood_n 3.5_o of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o which_o disjunctive_a sense_n to_o be_v the_o sense_n intend_v in_o this_o place_n may_v be_v prove_v because_o else_o christ_n shall_v be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o for_o see_v in_o the_o ver_fw-la 59_o of_o this_o chapter_n he_o promise_v life_n eternal_a to_o eat_v only_o qui_fw-la manducat_fw-la panem_fw-la vivit_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la if_o in_o the_o four_o and_o fifty_o verse_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o require_v unto_o himself_o life_n everlasting_a eat_v and_o drink_v both_o he_o shall_v in_o the_o space_n of_o a_o few_o line_n speak_v contrary_n and_o because_o this_o be_v impossible_a we_o interpret_v the_o place_n disiunctive_o unless_o you_o eat_v or_o drink_v etc._n etc._n answer_n cardinal_n bellarmine_n eucharistia_n affirm_v that_o the_o text_n of_o saint_n john_n cap._n 6._o be_v to_o be_v expound_v of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n and_o not_o only_o of_o spiritual_a receive_n but_o also_o of_o sacramental_a eat_n and_o drink_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o he_o say_v that_o although_o some_o catholic_n to_o wit_n gabriel_n biel_n 48._o cusanus_fw-la bohem._n caietan_n 6._o ruard_v tapper_n 15._o hesselius_n specie_fw-la and_o 〈◊〉_d 59_o expound_v this_o chapter_n of_o spiritual_a receive_v yet_o other_o pontifician_n hold_v as_o himself_o do_v verissimumest_fw-la with_o bellarmine_n also_o agree_v suares_n 2._o vasques_n 5._o gregory_n valence_n 5._o salmeron_n barradius_fw-la etc._n etc._n from_o this_o exposition_n it_o follow_v that_o communicant_n when_o they_o partake_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n aught_o to_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n for_o our_o saviour_n say_v john_n 6.54_o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n etc._n etc._n 55._o my_o flesh_n be_v meat_n indeed_o and_o my_o blood_n be_v drink_v indeed_o 56._o he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n dwell_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o 53._o except_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n and_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n etc._n etc._n our_o adversary_n after_o some_o stagger_n about_o the_o place_n joh._n 6._o condescend_v at_o last_o to_o bellarmine_n tenet_n and_o admit_v that_o saint_n john_n treat_v of_o sacramental_a receive_v answer_v the_o former_a place_n by_o a_o distinction_n of_o substance_n and_o manner_n say_v that_o howsoever_o christ_n word_n may_v sound_v of_o the_o manner_n of_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n yet_o his_o intention_n be_v to_o command_v no_o more_o than_o the_o substance_n and_o he_o prove_v this_o by_o the_o example_n of_o baptism_n wherein_o although_o according_a to_o the_o letter_n dip_v and_o plunge_v
into_o the_o water_n be_v require_v yet_o according_a to_o the_o intention_n sprinkle_v be_v sufficient_a but_o here_o i_o demand_v of_o the_o romi_v whether_o any_o thing_n touch_v the_o manner_n of_o receive_v the_o eucharist_n be_v deliver_v in_o christ_n word_n or_o not_o and_o if_o nothing_o than_o our_o saviour_n treat_v not_o either_o of_o spiritual_a or_o sacramental_a eat_n or_o drink_v for_o both_o these_o belong_v to_o the_o manner_n and_o if_o he_o speak_v about_o the_o manner_n than_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n must_v be_v sacramental_o receive_v as_o well_o as_o his_o body_n but_o it_o be_v not_o receive_v sacramental_o utroque_fw-la under_o bread_n alone_o because_o to_o receive_v sacramental_o be_v to_o receive_v under_o the_o proper_a and_o individual_a sign_n represent_v the_o blood_n receive_v which_o be_v wine_n and_o implicit_a and_o virtual_a receive_n of_o christ_n blood_n be_v spiritual_a drink_n and_o this_o be_v perform_v out_o of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o not_o only_o in_o the_o same_o the_o last_o evasion_n be_v that_o in_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n et_fw-la be_v take_v for_o aut_fw-la that_o be_v unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n or_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n you_o have_v no_o life_n etc._n etc._n this_o poor_a cavil_v borrow_v from_o claudius_n de_fw-fr saint_n 1._o be_v against_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o text_n and_o if_o it_o be_v admit_v than_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n implicit_o and_o virtual_o and_o the_o reason_n why_o christ_n name_v bread_n alone_o vers_fw-la 51._o be_v in_o opposition_n to_o manna_n for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n descend_v from_o heaven_n by_o incarnation_n and_o propound_v himself_o incarnate_a as_o a_o object_n of_o faith_n bibitur_fw-la and_o because_o he_o be_v the_o spiritual_a life_n and_o food_n of_o man_n soul_n by_o donation_n of_o his_o word_n and_o grace_n and_o herein_o excel_v manna_n which_o be_v only_o corporal_a bread_n but_o in_o the_o sacred_a eucharist_n christ_n be_v represent_v as_o have_v perfect_v man_n salvation_n and_o this_o representation_n be_v make_v by_o two_o sensible_a sign_n wherein_o his_o suffering_n of_o death_n by_o separation_n of_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o of_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v visible_o propose_v and_o whosoever_o receive_v he_o sacramental_o as_o he_o be_v sacrifice_v on_o the_o cross_n must_v receive_v he_o by_o both_o the_o sign_n because_o in_o both_o and_o not_o in_o one_o alone_a there_o be_v a_o representation_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o of_o the_o effusion_n of_o his_o blood_n as_o for_o the_o jesuit_n instance_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o baptise_v whether_o by_o plunge_v or_o by_o sprinkle_v the_o same_o be_v not_o to_o purpose_v for_o in_o our_o question_n the_o dispute_n be_v about_o take_v away_o one_o of_o the_o element_n and_o material_a part_n of_o a_o sacrament_n in_o baptism_n only_o a_o circumstance_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o apply_v and_o use_v the_o element_n be_v alter_v by_o the_o church_n but_o from_o alteration_n of_o a_o thing_n accidental_a or_o of_o circumstance_n to_o infer_v a_o liberty_n to_o defalcate_v a_o substantial_a part_n be_v sophistical_a jesuit_fw-la jesuit_o 5._o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n not_o against_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v very_o often_o and_o frequent_o use_v communion_n under_o both_o kind_n so_o that_o lie_v man_n have_v by_o prescription_n a_o right_a 2._o to_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n yea_o they_o be_v bind_v thereunto_o by_o the_o obligation_n of_o custom_n not_o by_o divine_a precept_n answer_n bibere_fw-la the_o primitive_a church_n in_o all_o her_o public_a assembly_n and_o congregation_n administer_v the_o holy_a eucharist_n to_o the_o people_n in_o both_o kind_n perpetual_o and_o not_o frequent_o only_a or_o often_o as_o the_o jesait_fw-mi minse_v and_o justin_n martyr_n say_v 482._o that_o the_o apostle_n prescribe_v this_o as_o command_v by_o christ_n and_o saint_n cyprian_n fecit_fw-la have_v these_o word_n lex_fw-la esum_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la prohibet_fw-la euangelium_fw-la precipit_fw-la ut_fw-la bibatur_fw-la whereas_o the_o old_a law_n forbid_v the_o eat_n of_o blood_n the_o gospel_n command_v to_o drink_v the_o blood_n and_o in_o his_o 63_o epistle_n many_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n depart_v not_o from_o that_o which_o our_o master_n christ_n command_v and_o perform_v praecepit_fw-la &_o iussit_fw-la but_o other_o of_o ignorance_n and_o simplicity_n in_o calais_n dominico_n sanctificando_fw-la &_o 〈◊〉_d ministrando_fw-la in_o consecrate_v and_o minister_a the_o cup_n to_o the_o people_n do_v not_o that_o which_o christ_n our_o lord_n and_o god_n perform_v and_o teach_v petrus_n de_fw-fr occhagavia_n say_v ministrando_fw-la that_o the_o word_n et_fw-la plebi_fw-la ministrando_fw-la deliver_v it_o to_o the_o people_n be_v not_o st._n cyprian_n but_o this_o man_n go_v by_o hearsay_n as_o appear_v both_o by_o the_o elder_n &_o late_a edition_n 542._o of_o cyprian_a and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o this_o father_n be_v manifest_a by_o other_o place_n cite_v in_o the_o margin_n 63._o therefore_o it_o be_v palpable_o untrue_a which_o the_o jesuit_n vent_v they_o be_v bind_v thereunto_o by_o obligation_n of_o custom_n and_o not_o by_o divine_a precept_n jesuit_fw-la also_o because_o the_o manichee_n be_v impious_o per_n suade_v 46._o that_o wine_n be_v the_o gall_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n do_v superstitious_o abstain_v from_o the_o chalice_n the_o church_n in_o detestation_n quadrage_n of_o this_o error_n command_v for_o a_o time_n communion_n under_o both_o kind_n upon_o which_o occasion_n gelasius_n pope_n make_v 〈◊〉_d the_o decree_n record_v by_o gratian_n aut_fw-la integra_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la suscipiant_fw-la aut_fw-la ab_fw-la integris_fw-la arceantur_fw-la and_o why_o because_o such_o abstinent_n 〈◊〉_d qua_fw-la superstitione_n docentur_fw-la astringi_fw-la that_o be_v be_v superstitious_a not_o abstain_v out_o of_o any_o devotion_n but_o out_o of_o impious_a persuasion_n of_o the_o impurity_n of_o god_n creature_n wherefore_o the_o crime_n with_o which_o some_o protestant_n charge_v we_o that_o our_o receive_n under_o the_o sole_a form_n of_o bread_n be_v to_o jump_v in_o opinion_n with_o the_o manichee_n we_o may_v as_o doctor_n morton_n confess_v reject_v as_o injurious_a 140._o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o manichee_n 〈◊〉_d from_o wine_n but_o the_o reason_n of_o their_o for_o 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v judge_v heretical_a this_o custom_n be_v the_o cause_n that_o cyprian_n domini_fw-la say_v that_o the_o law_n 〈◊〉_d the_o eat_n of_o blood_n but_o the_o 〈◊〉_d command_v the_o same_o shall_v be_v drink_v not_o only_o because_o some_o christian_n to_o wit_n priest_n be_v bind_v to_o 〈◊〉_d the_o blood_n of_o christ_n but_o also_o because_o christ_n in_o his_o 〈◊〉_d do_v 〈◊〉_d the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o both_o kind_n whence_o grow_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o receive_v in_o both_o kind_n and_o by_o custom_n there_o grow_v further_a a_o oligation_n to_o drink_v of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d there_o be_v some_o just_a cause_n of_o 〈◊〉_d as_o in_o the_o sick_a and_o in_o some_o that_o by_o nature_n loathe_a wine_n answer_n one_o error_n beget_v another_o it_o be_v former_o say_v that_o communion_n in_o both_o kind_n be_v use_v by_o the_o father_n as_o a_o matter_n of_o custom_n only_o and_o not_o because_o of_o precept_n now_o it_o be_v add_v that_o this_o be_v do_v only_o because_o of_o the_o error_n of_o the_o manichee_n i_o answer_v first_o before_o ever_o the_o manichee_n appear_v in_o any_o number_n etc._n communion_n in_o both_o kind_n be_v in_o practice_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o by_o ignatius_n dionysius_n justin_n martyr_n ireneus_fw-la tertullian_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o saint_n cyprian_n scriptor_n second_o although_o pope_n 〈◊〉_d authoritate_fw-la in_o his_o sermon_n speak_v of_o the_o manichee_n yet_o vasques_n specie_fw-la the_o jesuit_n say_v that_o he_o command_v not_o the_o use_n of_o the_o cup_n because_o of_o they_o but_o require_v that_o these_o heretic_n which_o feign_v themselves_o catholic_n and_o come_v to_o the_o holy_a communion_n receive_v the_o bread_n and_o take_v the_o cup_n into_o their_o hand_n pretend_v that_o they_o drink_v the_o wine_n and_o yet_o do_v not_o shall_v careful_o be_v observe_v three_o touch_v the_o place_n of_o pope_n gelasius_n provenire_fw-la the_o same_o author_n say_v institutionis_fw-la that_o whereas_o some_o of_o his_o part_n apply_v the_o same_o to_o the_o manichee_n yet_o this_o exposition_n agree_v not_o with_o the_o last_o branch_n of_o the_o canon_n for_o therein_o gelasius_n teach_v that_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v of_o that_o nature_n in_o regard_n of_o itself_o that_o without_o grievous_a sacrilege_n it_o can_v be_v divide_v and_o sever_v
〈◊〉_d sin_n after_o baptism_n be_v renew_v by_o the_o virtue_n of_o repentance_n convertimur_fw-la luc._n 22._o 62._o but_o it_o be_v erroneous_a that_o there_o be_v two_o distinct_a kind_n of_o repentance_n one_o before_o and_o the_o other_o after_o baptism_n the_o one_o a_o virtue_n only_o the_o other_o both_o a_o sacrament_n and_o a_o virtue_n for_o where_o there_o be_v the_o same_o definition_n there_o be_v also_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o kind_n but_o repentance_n before_o and_o after_o baptism_n have_v the_o same_o definition_n and_o integrall_a part_n to_o wit_n contrition_n for_o sin_n commit_v confession_n to_o god_n and_o if_o need_v require_v confession_n to_o man_n according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o fault_n amendment_n of_o life_n and_o humble_a supplication_n by_o prayer_n of_o faith_n for_o reconciliation_n with_o god_n and_o for_o remission_n of_o sin_n matth._n 3.6_o luc._n 3.10_o act._n 3._o 19_o &_o cap._n 8.22_o &_o cap._n 26.20_o also_o the_o grace_n and_o promise_v of_o remission_n be_v make_v to_o repentance_n before_o and_o after_o baptism_n act._n 3._o 19_o &_o 5.31_o &_o 8.22_o apoc._n 2._o 5._o 16._o and_o if_o repentance_n before_o baptism_n be_v no_o sacrament_n what_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v such_o after_o baptism_n for_o no_o visible_a element_n or_o sign_n be_v add_v neither_o be_v any_o promise_n of_o a_o different_a kind_n from_o the_o former_a annex_v and_o although_o the_o apostle_n 1._o cor._n 5.3_o &_o 2._o cor._n 2_o 3._o etc._n etc._n &_o cap._n 7.8_o and_o also_o the_o primitive_a church_n lapsis_fw-la urge_v a_o strict_a manner_n and_o degree_n of_o humiliation_n upon_o notorious_a delinquent_n after_o baptism_n than_o before_o yet_o this_o discipline_n change_v not_o the_o kind_n or_o substance_n of_o repentance_n but_o increase_v only_o the_o quantity_n and_o measure_n thereof_o jesuit_fw-la four_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v that_o god_n by_o penance_n forgive_a the_o eternal_a punishment_n do_v in_o lieu_n thereof_o many_o time_n appoint_v a_o task_n of_o temporal_a pain_n to_o be_v endure_v by_o the_o penitent_a this_o reserve_v penalty_n be_v great_a or_o lesser_a according_a to_o the_o multitude_n and_o grievousnesse_n of_o the_o sin_n commit_v and_o be_v that_o for_o which_o penitent_n may_v and_o must_v satisfy_v and_o why_o may_v not_o the_o penal_a work_n perform_v by_o the_o child_n of_o god_n beautify_v by_o so_o manyafore-named_n excellent_a grace_n be_v sufficient_a to_o deserve_v of_o god_n the_o remission_n of_o this_o temporal_a mulct_n and_o cancel_v the_o debt_n of_o endure_v transitory_a pain_n i_o can_v bring_v testimony_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a father_n in_o great_a number_n for_o the_o necessity_n we_o have_v of_o suffer_v these_o voluntary_a affliction_n for_o sin_n and_o of_o the_o efficacitie_n thereof_o to_o expiate_v sin_n with_o the_o very_a name_n of_o satisfaction_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o ancient_a father_n that_o have_v not_o teach_v both_o the_o thing_n and_o the_o word_n answer_n when_o god_n pardon_v a_o sinner_n he_o do_v it_o not_o by_o way_n of_o exchange_n or_o parcel_a but_o remit_v all_o punishment_n of_o malediction_n or_o pure_a revenge_n est_fw-la for_o that_o which_o be_v so_o forgive_v as_o that_o after_o pardon_v it_o be_v not_o mention_v or_o remember_v and_o which_o be_v cast_v behind_o god_n back_n and_o throw_v into_o the_o bottom_n of_o the_o sea_n and_o which_o can_v no_o where_o be_v find_v and_o be_v blot_v out_o of_o the_o debt-book_n of_o the_o almighty_a be_v not_o take_v away_o by_o commutation_n of_o a_o great_a punishment_n into_o a_o less_o but_o by_o a_o free_a and_o full_a condonation_n of_o all_o vindictive_a punishment_n but_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o primitive_a father_n teach_v such_o a_o remission_n of_o sin_n on_o god_n part_n to_o the_o penitent_a ezech._n 18.22_o esa._n 38._o 17._o &_o ca._n 43._o 25._o &_o 44._o 22._o mich._n 7.19_o jer._n 50.20_o heb._n 8._o 12._o &_o 10._o 17._o col._n 2._o 14._o matth._n 18.32_o s._n augustine_n ignoscere_fw-la if_o god_n have_v cover_v sin_n he_o will_v not_o observe_v he_o will_v not_o think_v upon_o they_o to_o punish_v they_o he_o will_v not_o take_v knowledge_n but_o rather_o pardon_n gregory_n 18._o the_o great_a ignoscendo_fw-la impunita_fw-la relinquit_fw-la by_o pardon_v he_o leave_v they_o unpunished_a cassiodorus_n 84._o remittere_fw-la est_fw-la debitum_fw-la relaxare_fw-la non_fw-la causae_fw-la alicuius_fw-la interuentu_fw-la sed_fw-la pietatis_fw-la intuitu_fw-la to_o remit_v be_v to_o release_v the_o debt_n not_o by_o intercourse_n of_o any_o cause_n on_o man_n part_n but_o by_o aspect_n of_o piety_n nevertheless_o after_o great_a and_o enormous_a offence_n commit_v by_o his_o people_n god_n do_v chastise_v they_o deus_fw-la with_o the_o rod_n of_o correction_n psal._n 89._o 33._o 1._o cor._n 11._o 31_o 32._o and_o this_o correction_n be_v a_o pain_n of_o castigation_n lament_v jerem._n 3.39_o but_o not_o a_o punishment_n of_o malediction_n 〈◊〉_d galath_n 3._o 13._o a_o work_n of_o god_n mercy_n rather_o than_o of_o his_o justice._n the_o difference_n between_o pontifician_n and_o we_o in_o this_o doctrine_n be_v that_o we_o believe_v a_o remainder_n of_o temporal_a affliction_n after_o remission_n of_o the_o guilt_n of_o sin_n in_o this_o life_n only_o and_o that_o for_o chastisement_n virtutem_fw-la erudition_n and_o probation_n they_o maintain_v a_o remainder_n of_o temporal_a punishment_n after_o sin_n remit_v not_o only_o in_o this_o present_a life_n but_o after_o the_o same_o in_o purgatory_n further_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o affliction_n or_o pain_n of_o chastisement_n inflict_v upon_o penitent_a sinner_n may_v by_o prayer_n of_o faith_n exercise_n of_o virtue_n humiliation_n and_o mortification_n be_v either_o remove_v or_o else_o mitigate_v and_o convert_v to_o the_o increase_n of_o grace_n and_o glory_n in_o those_o which_o with_o patience_n and_o holiness_n endure_v the_o same_o in_o this_o life_n but_o we_o deny_v either_o that_o any_o pain_n follow_v just_a person_n after_o their_o decease_n or_o that_o in_o this_o life_n they_o can_v by_o prayer_n mortification_n or_o any_o good_a work_n merit_n release_n of_o any_o temporal_a mulct_n or_o satisfy_v the_o divine_a justice_n for_o the_o least_o fault_n or_o guilt_n of_o any_o sin_n on_o their_o own_o behalf_n much_o less_o for_o other_o and_o whereas_o the_o jesuit_n affirm_v that_o he_o can_v produce_v testimony_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n in_o great_a number_n both_o for_o our_o necessity_n of_o suffer_v voluntary_a affliction_n and_o also_o for_o the_o efficacitie_n thereof_o to_o expiate_v sin_n and_o to_o satisfy_v i_o answer_v first_o that_o the_o father_n and_o holy_a scripture_n require_v work_n of_o humiliation_n and_o mortification_n not_o as_o meritorious_a but_o only_o as_o mean_n and_o cause_n impetrant_fw-la or_o deprecant_fw-la to_o appease_v god_n wrath_n for_o sin_n second_o the_o father_n understand_v not_o the_o word_n satisfaction_n strict_o and_o in_o rigour_n for_o satisfaction_n of_o condignity_n as_o romist_n do_v remissionem_fw-la but_o improper_o and_o large_o to_o wit_n for_o satisfaction_n of_o deprecation_n congruity_n or_o impetration_n and_o according_a to_o their_o acceptation_n and_o use_v the_o word_n satisfaction_n comprehend_v contrition_n and_o confession_n and_o not_o sacramental_a satisfaction_n only_o also_o they_o require_v satisfaction_n as_o a_o remedy_n against_o the_o guilt_n of_o mortal_a sin_n and_o not_o only_o as_o a_o purgative_n of_o venial_a sin_n or_o as_o a_o remedy_n against_o temporal_a pain_n only_o but_o to_o the_o end_n the_o reader_n may_v evident_o perceive_v the_o popish_a fraud_n in_o pervert_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o father_n concern_v satisfaction_n i_o will_v in_o this_o place_n distinct_o compare_v their_o doctrine_n with_o the_o present_a romish_a tenet_n first_o it_o be_v consess_v that_o many_o father_n use_v the_o word_n satisfaction_n 2._o and_o require_v penitent_a person_n to_o perform_v the_o same_o to_o god_n and_o man_n second_o within_o the_o name_n of_o satisfaction_n they_o include_v and_o comprehend_v contrition_n to_o god_n confession_n and_o amendment_n of_o life_n eleemosynis_fw-la three_o they_o require_v satisfaction_n for_o the_o fault_n and_o eternal_a guilt_n of_o sin_n aeternus_fw-la and_o not_o only_o for_o remoovall_a of_o temporal_a punishment_n four_o the_o word_n satisfaction_n be_v take_v in_o two_o notion_n first_o strict_o for_o a_o just_a and_o equal_a compensation_n of_o the_o injury_n commit_v against_o god_n which_o schoolman_n term_n satisfaction_n of_o condignity_n iustitia_fw-la second_o for_o a_o interpretative_a compensation_n as_o durand_n congruo_fw-la term_v it_o ground_v upon_o divine_a favour_n and_o acceptation_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o complete_a dignity_n of_o the_o action_n the_o schoolman_n term_v this_o latter_a satisfaction_n of_o 〈◊〉_d and_o impetration_n because_o god_n in_o his_o favourable_a indulgence_n 〈◊〉_d more_o on_o man_n part_n as_o necessary_a to_o
remission_n of_o sin_n and_o because_o he_o be_v entreat_v by_o the_o same_o to_o release_v the_o punishment_n deserve_v the_o first_o kind_n of_o satisfaction_n be_v make_v by_o christ_n alone_o saeramentorum_fw-la both_o for_o fault_n and_o guilt_n of_o sin_n the_o latter_a according_a to_o the_o speak_n of_o sundry_a father_n be_v perform_v by_o penitent_a person_n 〈◊〉_d by_o their_o contrition_n 〈◊〉_d confession_n and_o other_o penitential_a action_n five_o repentance_n may_v be_v exercise_v private_o only_a before_o god_n or_o else_o open_o and_o before_o man_n the_o ancient_a church_n observe_v a_o severe_a discipline_n and_o impose_v upon_o notorious_a and_o enormous_a sinner_n open_a penance_n 16._o cause_v they_o to_o make_v satisfaction_n to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o testify_v their_o unfeigned_a repentance_n to_o god_n by_o external_a sign_n and_o by_o action_n of_o humiliation_n and_o mortification_n also_o in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o father_n sinner_n which_o have_v voluntary_o confess_v their_o offence_n to_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v by_o they_o enjoin_v to_o a_o strict_a manner_n of_o humiliation_n and_o exercise_v of_o work_n of_o charity_n and_o mortification_n poenit_fw-la and_o the_o father_n style_v these_o penitential_a action_n by_o the_o name_n of_o satisfaction_n partly_o in_o respect_n of_o man_n offend_v peccata_fw-la partly_o in_o the_o regard_n of_o offender_n themselves_o who_o because_o they_o do_v that_o which_o be_v enjoin_v they_o by_o their_o spiritual_a guide_n to_o appease_v the_o indignation_n of_o god_n be_v say_v to_o make_v satisfaction_n but_o the_o father_n do_v not_o hereby_o exalt_v penitential_a deed_n to_o a_o sufficiency_n or_o equality_n of_o satisfy_v god_n justice_n for_o this_o effect_n be_v proper_a only_o to_o the_o action_n and_o passion_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n but_o they_o term_v that_o satisfaction_n which_o they_o judge_v meet_v or_o necessary_a for_o sinner_n to_o perform_v that_o they_o may_v prevent_v divine_a indignation_n and_o whereby_o they_o may_v repair_v the_o spiritual_a detriment_n which_o they_o have_v incur_v by_o fall_v into_o sin_n six_o and_o last_o marsilius_n ab_fw-la inguen_fw-la presupposira_fw-la a_o famous_a schoolman_n observe_v 〈◊〉_d that_o satisfaction_n sometime_o import_v all_o the_o action_n 〈◊〉_d or_o imperate_a which_o a_o sinner_n must_v perform_v on_o his_o part_n that_o god_n may_v be_v pacify_v and_o thus_o it_o contain_v contrition_n confession_n etc._n etc._n sometime_o it_o note_v only_o those_o act_n which_o follow_v contrationand_n confession_n and_o be_v either_o voluntary_o assume_v or_o impose_v by_o a_o confessor_n the_o father_n use_v the_o word_n satisfaction_n in_o the_o first_o notion_n and_o they_o know_v no_o sacramental_a satisfaction_n affirmant_fw-la but_o only_o of_o discipline_n or_o private_a humiliation_n now_o the_o romist_n in_o their_o course_n of_o doctrine_n have_v miserable_o 〈◊〉_d all_o this_o first_o that_o which_o the_o father_n speak_v of_o the_o fault_n and_o guilt_n of_o sin_n they_o wrest_v to_o the_o temporal_a pain_n of_o mortal_a sin_n remain_v after_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o everlasting_a guilt_n capita_fw-la second_o that_o which_o the_o father_n style_v satisfaction_n improper_o and_o by_o way_n of_o deprecation_n 〈◊〉_d they_o make_v satisfaction_n of_o condignity_n yea_o in_o rigour_n of_o justice_n iustitiae_fw-la and_o for_o venial_a sin_n more_o effectual_a than_o christ_n satisfaction_n 3._o three_o that_o which_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n be_v a_o work_n of_o discipline_n 〈◊〉_d or_o christian_a mortification_n they_o make_v sacramental_a four_o whereas_o the_o father_n place_v satisfaction_n in_o all_o 〈◊〉_d action_n inward_a and_o outward_a ieiunijs_fw-la and_o especial_o in_o such_o action_n as_o be_v command_v by_o god_n as_o necessary_a to_o obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n the_o romist_n restrain_v the_o same_o to_o external_a action_n succeed_a contrition_n and_o confession_n and_o principal_o to_o electious_a and_o voluntary_a action_n 1._o five_o the_o father_n give_v not_o absolution_n to_o 〈◊〉_d until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o have_v accomplish_v the_o penitential_a action_n enjoin_v admittitur_fw-la romist_n set_v the_o cart_n before_o the_o horse_n and_o absolve_v before_o satisfaction_n be_v make_v which_o be_v as_o one_o say_v to_o set_v easter_n before_o lent_n jesuit_fw-la but_o i_o suppose_v they_o be_v to_o your_o majesty_n well_o know_v and_o therefore_o in_o the_o propose_a difficulty_n suppose_v the_o satisfaction_n for_o sin_n to_o be_v possible_a you_o move_v this_o doubt_n whether_o the_o penitent_n can_v so_o full_o satisfy_v for_o themselves_o as_o their_o satisfaction_n may_v superabound_v and_o be_v refer_v unto_o the_o treasure_n of_o the_o church_n to_o satisfy_v this_o doubt_n three_o proposition_n be_v to_o be_v prove_v answer_n it_o be_v well_o know_v to_o his_o gracious_a majesty_n that_o you_o pervert_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o father_n and_o from_o the_o word_n satisfaction_n use_v by_o they_o in_o one_o notion_n you_o argue_v to_o another_o that_o be_v from_o satisfaction_n impetrant_fw-la which_o be_v a_o action_n or_o fruit_n of_o the_o virtue_n of_o repentance_n you_o conclude_v your_o romish_a sacramental_a satisfaction_n of_o condignity_n jesuit_fw-la the_o first_o that_o good_a work_n of_o saint_n that_o be_v poenall_a and_o afflictive_a do_v not_o only_o merit_v heaven_n but_o also_o satisfy_v for_o sin_n this_o be_v prove_v give_v of_o alm_n for_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n be_v meritorious_a witness_v our_o saviour_n himself_o who_o to_o the_o just_a in_o reward_n of_o their_o alm_n will_v give_v the_o kingdom_n prepare_v from_o the_o begin_n 34._o of_o the_o world_n answer_n first_o you_o argue_v out_o of_o saint_n matthew_n 25._o 34._o from_o reward_n of_o work_n to_o merit_v of_o work_n but_o you_o must_v observe_v that_o there_o be_v a_o reward_n of_o mere_a bounty_n as_o well_o as_o of_o desert_n 〈◊〉_d 127.2_o ventris_fw-la ezech._n 29.18_o extendit_fw-la gen._n 30.18_o also_o 〈◊〉_d reason_n and_o cause_n why_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v bestow_v be_v not_o meritorious_a but_o some_o cause_n be_v dispositive_a 〈◊〉_d or_o impetrant_fw-la jesuit_fw-la and_o it_o be_v also_o satisfactory_a for_o sin_n witness_n daniel_n 4.24_o who_o give_v this_o council_n unto_o the_o babylonian_a king_n redeem_v thy_o sin_n with_o almsdeed_n and_o thy_o iniquity_n with_o mercy_n unto_o the_o poor_a answer_n the_o place_n of_o daniel_n 4.24_o according_a to_o the_o vulgar_a translation_n etc._n speak_v of_o redeem_v sin_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o fault_n and_o eternal_a guilt_n and_o not_o only_o of_o temporal_a punishment_n also_o of_o redeem_v sin_n in_o this_o life_n and_o not_o of_o redeem_v they_o in_o purgatory_n beside_o if_o nabuchadonosor_n be_v a_o unjust_a person_n mortuorum_fw-la esa._n 14.15_o then_o according_a to_o your_o own_o position_n he_o can_v not_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o sin_n last_o the_o punishment_n threaten_v and_o foretell_v in_o that_o scripture_n be_v such_o as_o bellarmine_n decrevit_fw-la himself_o confess_v belong_v not_o to_o the_o court_n of_o penance_n and_o papal_a indulgence_n and_o if_o pope_n pardon_n and_o romish_a satisfaction_n can_v deliver_v sinner_n from_o frenzy_n and_o loss_n of_o outward_a good_n and_o temporal_a dominion_n the_o madman_n in_o bedlam_n and_o decay_a merchant_n and_o other_o afflict_a person_n throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n will_v become_v suitor_n to_o his_o holiness_n to_o insert_v these_o and_o other_o such_o like_a temporal_a calamity_n into_o the_o patent_n of_o his_o indulgence_n and_o jubilee_n also_o the_o place_n of_o daniel_n be_v understand_v literal_o of_o break_v of_o sin_n by_o almsdeed_n as_o if_o one_o preach_v to_o a_o extortioner_n shall_v say_v break_v off_o thy_o sinful_a course_n by_o imitate_v zacheus_n etc._n etc._n now_o what_o merit_n be_v there_o in_o this_o or_o what_o immediate_a satisfaction_n to_o god_n for_o this_o be_v rather_o satisfaction_n to_o man_n in_o regard_n of_o civil_a injury_n last_o there_o be_v no_o ground_n either_o in_o scripture_n or_o in_o tradition_n for_o this_o romish_a doctrine_n to_o wit_n the_o temporal_a pain_n of_o personal_a sin_n remain_v after_o this_o life_n may_v be_v remove_v or_o expiate_v by_o humane_a satisfaction_n for_o whatsoever_o be_v speak_v in_o holy_a scripture_n or_o by_o ancient_a father_n concern_v redeem_v sin_n by_o satisfaction_n belong_v to_o the_o fault_n and_o eternal_a pain_n of_o sin_n as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o temporal_a punishment_n and_o the_o satisfaction_n must_v be_v perform_v by_o the_o delinquent_a person_n himself_o in_o this_o present_a life_n also_o the_o redemption_n or_o satisfaction_n possible_a to_o be_v perform_v by_o man_n be_v by_o way_n of_o deprecation_n only_o and_o not_o by_o just_a compensation_n and_o if_o there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n because_o the_o pain_n thereof_o will_v be_v proportion_v and_o stint_v by_o the_o divine_a will_n and_o decree_n it_o can_v not_o rest_v in_o the_o
the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o to_o make_v themselves_o the_o better_a capable_a of_o that_o extraordinary_a glory_n and_o bliss_n which_o be_v prepare_v as_o a_o crown_n for_o such_o as_o transcend_v other_o in_o virtue_n remunerationis_fw-la second_o if_o they_o have_v superaboundant_a satisfaction_n that_o be_v if_o they_o endure_v affliction_n and_o trial_n more_o than_o be_v necessary_a to_o satisfy_v for_o the_o temporary_a pain_n of_o their_o personal_a sin_n these_o superabundant_a passion_n shall_v not_o want_v a_o sufficient_a fruit_n and_o effect_n 2._o cor._n 4._o 17._o 2._o tim._n 4._o 8._o and_o the_o want_n of_o the_o proper_a fruit_n of_o satisfaction_n be_v recompense_v with_o a_o large_a increase_n and_o surplusage_n in_o another_o kind_n can_v be_v no_o dishonour_n to_o god_n or_o loss_n to_o they_o for_o even_o as_o it_o be_v in_o prayer_n although_o the_o most_o proper_a fruit_n and_o effect_v thereof_o be_v to_o obtain_v the_o thing_n request_v of_o god_n and_o yet_o if_o god_n deny_v the_o particular_a request_n 2._o cor._n 12._o a_o just_a man_n prayer_n consider_v as_o it_o be_v prayer_n want_v not_o the_o fruit_n if_o god_n otherwise_o bestow_v that_o which_o be_v equivalent_a to_o the_o thing_n request_v utilius_fw-la so_o likewise_o if_o a_o man_n can_v superabound_a in_o satisfy_v for_o his_o own_o sin_n his_o satisfaction_n be_v not_o fruitless_a if_o god_n make_v requital_n by_o any_o other_o kind_n of_o benefit_n equal_a or_o transcend_v the_o proper_a fruit_n and_o effect_v thereof_o jesuit_fw-la the_o second_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n who_o merit_n be_v so_o powerful_a as_o to_o purchase_v to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n such_o excellent_a and_o admirable_a saint_n so_o pure_a of_o life_n so_o perfect_a in_o penance_n as_o their_o satisfaction_n may_v suffice_v to_o pay_v the_o debt_n of_o temporal_a pain_n due_a unto_o other_o answer_n if_o one_o shall_v affirm_v it_o be_v more_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n to_o have_v his_o merit_n so_o potent_a as_o to_o purchase_v to_o himself_o a_o people_n and_o inheritance_n which_o in_o this_o life_n be_v perfect_o innocent_a and_o just_a need_v no_o remission_n of_o sin_n than_o to_o purchase_v a_o people_n carry_v always_o about_o with_o they_o the_o remainder_n of_o sin_n he_o shall_v not_o honour_v christ_n but_o prove_v himself_o a_o liar_n 1._o joh._n 1._o 8_o 10._o so_o likewise_o to_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a honour_n to_o christ_n to_o have_v his_o merit_n advance_v so_o far_o as_o that_o by_o the_o virtue_n thereof_o man_n be_v make_v satisfier_n of_o divine_a justice_n together_o with_o christ_n carry_v a_o show_n of_o honour_v christ_n but_o it_o be_v in_o truth_n a_o sacrilegious_a error_n and_o papist_n may_v as_o well_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v for_o christ_n great_a glory_n to_o make_v man_n subordinate_a justifier_n redeemer_n or_o whatsoever_o else_o their_o vertiginous_a fancy_n shall_v suggest_v jesuit_fw-la the_o three_o reason_n be_v to_o make_v man_n love_v the_o church_n and_o society_n of_o saint_n whereby_o they_o come_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o abundancy_n of_o her_o treasure_n to_o pay_v their_o grievous_a debt_n this_o be_v that_o comfortable_a article_n which_o the_o apostle_n put_v down_o in_o the_o creed_n to_o be_v know_v of_o every_o one_o the_o communion_n of_o saint_n this_o be_v that_o which_o make_v king_n david_n exult_v say_v i_o be_o partaker_n with_o all_o they_o 63._o that_o fear_v thou_o and_o keep_v thy_o commandment_n and_o in_o this_o respect_n the_o apostle_n exhort_v we_o gratias_fw-la agamus_fw-la 1.12_o deo_fw-la patri_fw-la qui_fw-la dignos_fw-la nos_fw-la fecit_fw-la in_o partem_fw-la sortis_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la in_o lumine_fw-la this_o be_v that_o which_o the_o same_o apostle_n write_v to_o the_o corinthian_n exhort_v they_o to_o be_v libre_fw-la all_o towards_o titus_n and_o luke_n for_o the_o present_a 8.14_o let_v your_o abundance_n in_o temporal_a good_n supply_v their_o want_n that_o 〈◊〉_d their_o abundance_n in_o pious_a work_n may_v be_v a_o supplement_n unto_o your_o want_n this_o hope_n to_o supply_v in_o this_o kind_a the_o spiritual_a needs_o of_o christian_n by_o the_o abundance_n of_o his_o suffering_n make_v saint_n paul_n so_o much_o rejoice_v in_o they_o i_o joy_v say_v he_o in_o my_o 12.15_o suffering_n for_o you_o and_o i_o make_v full_a the_o thing_n that_o want_v of_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n in_o my_o flesh_n for_o his_o body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n and_o again_o cupio_fw-la impendi_fw-la &_o super_fw-la impendi_fw-la pro_fw-la vobis_fw-la out_o of_o which_o word_n origen_n gather_v that_o saint_n paul_n as_o a_o kind_n of_o num._n victim_n or_o sacrifice_n do_v expiate_v the_o sin_n of_o other_o not_o satisfy_v for_o the_o injury_n against_o god_n nor_o for_o the_o eternal_a punishment_n due_a but_o for_o one_o outward_a and_o transitory_a effect_n of_o sin_n to_o wit_n the_o debt_n of_o temporal_a pain_n in_o this_o sense_n also_o saint_n augustine_n interprete_v the_o former_a 61._o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o suffer_v in_o his_o body_n the_o thing_n want_v of_o the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n patitur_fw-la christus_fw-la in_o membris_fw-la suis_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la in_fw-la nobis_fw-la ipsis_fw-la ad_fw-la communem_fw-la hanc_fw-la quasi_fw-la rempublicam_fw-la nam_fw-la cuique_fw-la pro_fw-la modulo_fw-la nostro_fw-la exoluimus_fw-la quod_fw-la debemus_fw-la answer_n the_o true_a love_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o saint_n be_v ground_v upon_o verity_n and_o not_o upon_o romish_a fable_n 2._o epist._n john_n vers_fw-la 1._o and_o communion_n of_o saint_n in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o live_n be_v copartnership_n in_o faith_n in_o verity_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o love_n in_o pious_a and_o charitable_a office_n and_o action_n and_o in_o the_o manifold_a grace_n of_o christ_n and_o towards_o the_o defunct_a it_o be_v communion_n of_o love_n imitation_n hope_n and_o expectation_n of_o the_o same_o glory_n 13._o but_o neither_o scripture_n nor_o father_n teach_v that_o the_o live_a saint_n have_v communion_n with_o the_o saint_n defunct_a by_o partake_v their_o superabundant_a satisfaction_n eph._n 4._o 15_o etc._n etc._n 1._o joh._n 1.3_o rom._n 12.4_o the_o say_n of_o david_n psal._n 119.63_o i_o be_o partaker_n with_o all_o they_o that_o fear_v thou_o and_o keep_v thy_o commandment_n observant_a prove_v that_o this_o holy_a man_n make_v righteous_a person_n his_o friend_n and_o associate_n and_o that_o he_o shun_v the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o wicked_a psal._n 101.6_o but_o of_o communion_n of_o satisfaction_n he_o speak_v not_o a_o word_n also_o what_o a_o miserable_a inference_n be_v this_o david_n be_v partaker_n of_o all_o they_o which_o fear_v god_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n ergo_fw-la he_o be_v partaker_n of_o their_o satisfaction_n and_o those_o to_o god-ward_o be_v there_o no_o other_o bond_n or_o act_n of_o fellowship_n but_o this_o only_a have_v all_o they_o which_o fear_n god_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n according_a to_o the_o state_n of_o this_o life_n superabundant_a satisfaction_n yea_o how_o appear_v it_o that_o david_n have_v need_n of_o other_o man_n satisfactory_a deed_n for_o he_o be_v a_o man_n after_o god_n own_o heart_n full_a of_o grace_n and_o abound_v in_o work_n of_o mortification_n psal._n 6.6_o &_o 102.9_o &_o psal._n 35._o 13_o yea_o of_o that_o rank_n to_o wit_n a_o great_a prophet_n 505._o which_o our_o adversary_n himself_o say_v receive_v not_o but_o communicate_v superabundant_a satisfaction_n to_o other_o want_v they_o s._n paul_n text_n col._n 1.12_o speak_v of_o partnership_n of_o heavenly_a inheritance_n etc._n and_o not_o of_o satisfaction_n the_o next_o place_n 2._o cor._n 8._o 14._o be_v expound_v by_o pontifician_n themselves_o of_o almesdeede_n in_o this_o life_n and_o the_o sense_n according_a to_o cardinal_n caietan_n ibid._n be_v you_o corinthian_n abound_v with_o temporal_a good_n the_o saint_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v in_o want_n the_o matter_n will_v be_v reduce_v to_o a_o equality_n if_o your_o plenty_n supply_v their_o indigencie_n but_o if_o with_o hugo_n carensis_n and_o lyra_n the_o latter_a part_n of_o the_o word_n shall_v be_v expound_v of_o spirituall_n it_o belong_v to_o such_o spiritual_a gift_n as_o be_v communicable_a from_o one_o member_n of_o the_o church_n militant_a in_o this_o life_n to_o another_o as_o instruction_n exhortation_n special_a prayer_n etc._n etc._n and_o not_o to_o satisfaction_n to_o be_v make_v to_o god_n by_o one_o for_o another_o much_o less_o of_o apply_v such_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o decease_a to_o the_o live_n or_o to_o other_o decease_v the_o place_n col._n 1._o 24._o 2._o cor._n 12._o 15._o be_v force_v by_o romist_n to_o speak_v to_o purpose_v which_o the_o apostle_n intend_v not_o s._n paul_n say_v col._n 1._o 24._o ireioyce_v in_o my_o suffering_n for_o you_o and_o fill_v up_o or_o accomplish_v 〈◊〉_d
〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d those_o thing_n which_o be_v behind_o or_o want_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d persoluenda_fw-la of_o the_o affliction_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d of_o christ_n in_o my_o flesh_n 〈◊〉_d his_o body_n which_o be_v the_o church_n the_o first_o part_n of_o these_o word_n prove_v that_o s._n paul_n suffer_v for_o the_o collossian_o but_o because_o he_o may_v suffer_v for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o their_o faith_n or_o as_o a_o example_n of_o patience_n aliorum_fw-la or_o by_o way_n of_o persecution_n because_o he_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o they_o discipulos_fw-la and_o other_o church_n it_o can_v be_v conclude_v that_o he_o suffer_v to_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o their_o sin_n second_o the_o next_o word_n conclude_v not_o satisfaction_n for_o christ_n affliction_n and_o passion_n be_v of_o two_o kind_n some_o personal_a and_o in_o his_o own_o flesh_n some_o by_o sympathy_n and_o compassion_n in_o his_o member_n sustinerem_fw-la the_o first_o be_v satisfactory_a the_o second_o be_v exemplary_a purgative_a probative_a or_o for_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n ostenderet_fw-la s._n paul_n supply_v not_o or_o perfect_v not_o the_o first_o esa._n 63.3_o for_o than_o christ_n suffering_n upon_o the_o cross_n be_v imperfect_a but_o both_o s._n paul_n and_o all_o other_o just_a person_n which_o patient_o bear_v affliction_n and_o endure_v the_o cross_n supply_n and_o accomplish_v that_o which_o be_v yet_o want_v in_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v consider_v in_o a_o mystical_a union_n to_o his_o church_n christ_n say_v to_o saul_n act._n 9.4_o saul_n saul_n why_o persecute_v thou_o i_o and_o v_o 5._o i_o be_o jesus_n who_o thou_o persecute_v s._n augustine_n membrorum_fw-la and_o s._n gregory_n gerat_fw-la say_v that_o christ_n and_o the_o church_n be_v one_o mystical_a body_n therefore_o when_o the_o member_n suffer_v the_o head_n suffer_v and_o the_o affliction_n of_o the_o member_n be_v the_o affliction_n of_o christ_n 2._o cor._n 1._o 5._o 1._o cor._n 12._o 12._o it_o be_v also_o remarkable_a that_o not_o only_o the_o father_n but_o the_o mayor_n part_n of_o popish_a doctor_n 10._o expound_v this_o scripture_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o it_o serve_v not_o at_o all_o to_o maintain_v papal_a indulgence_n and_o estius_n posse_fw-la a_o modern_a pontifician_n say_v that_o whereas_o 〈◊〉_d of_o his_o part_n strain_v the_o text_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o prove_v satisfaction_n and_o indulgence_n himself_o be_v of_o mind_n that_o the_o say_a doctrine_n can_v effectual_o be_v prove_v by_o this_o place_n the_o other_o place_n 2._o cor._n 12._o 15._o i_o will_v very_o glad_o spend_v and_o be_v spend_v for_o you_o or_o as_o the_o rhemist_n translate_v i_o most_o glad_o will_v bestow_v and_o will_v myself_o moreover_o be_v bestow_v for_o your_o soul_n afford_v no_o argument_n for_o satisfaction_n and_o pardon_n caietan_n estius_n justinian_n and_o other_o popish_a expositor_n themselves_o deliver_v the_o sense_n of_o this_o text_n in_o manner_n follow_v suis._n s._n paul_n manifest_v his_o paternal_a affection_n to_o the_o corinthian_n say_v i_o be_o ready_a not_o only_o as_o a_o father_n to_o bestow_v all_o that_o i_o have_v upon_o you_o so_o far_o be_o i_o from_o seek_v any_o thing_n of_o you_o but_o also_o to_o spend_v my_o life_n for_o you_o now_o by_o what_o art_n or_o engine_n can_v papist_n extort_v pardon_n or_o satisfaction_n out_o of_o this_o text_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o if_o saint_n paul_n be_v ready_a to_o spend_v himself_o life_n and_o state_n for_o the_o good_a of_o his_o flock_n therefore_o there_o be_v a_o rich_a stock_n and_o treasure_n of_o superabundant_a passion_n and_o satisfaction_n lay_v up_o by_o s._n paul_n to_o be_v spend_v by_o the_o corinthian_n at_o their_o need_n sure_o our_o adversary_n intend_v rather_o to_o deride_v the_o world_n than_o to_o give_v man_n satisfaction_n when_o he_o present_v we_o with_o such_o inconsequent_a stuff_n but_o the_o jesuit_n second_v his_o former_a inference_n by_o a_o testimony_n of_o origen_n i_o answer_v origen_n mereamur_fw-la in_o the_o place_n object_v speak_v of_o purge_a sin_n itself_o by_o the_o passion_n of_o martyr_n and_o not_o of_o the_o temporal_a mulct_n or_o pain_n of_o sin_n only_o but_o the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n purge_v not_o sin_n itself_o by_o way_n of_o condign_a satisfaction_n our_o adversary_n be_v witness_n 4._o but_o at_o the_o uttermost_a by_o way_n of_o deprecation_n now_o deprecation_n and_o satisfaction_n proper_o take_v be_v of_o diverse_a nature_n the_o place_n of_o s._n augustine_n inferimus_fw-la be_v strain_v against_o his_o meaning_n for_o this_o father_n speak_v of_o all_o the_o member_n of_o christ_n which_o suffer_v for_o their_o master_n cause_n but_o in_o our_o adversary_n tenet_n all_o that_o suffer_v for_o christ_n have_v not_o superabundant_a satisfaction_n but_o only_o some_o and_o this_o father_n be_v so_o far_o from_o maintain_v work_n of_o supererogation_n as_o that_o he_o say_v pro_fw-la modulo_fw-la nostro_fw-la exoluimus_fw-la quod_fw-la debemus_fw-la &_o pro_fw-la posse_fw-la virium_fw-la nostrarum_fw-la quasi_fw-la canonem_fw-la passionum_fw-la inferimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n according_a to_o our_o small_a measure_n we_o pay_v that_o which_o we_o be_v oblige_v unto_o and_o according_a to_o our_o power_n we_o cast_v in_o as_o it_o be_v the_o stint_n of_o our_o passion_n but_o they_o which_o pay_v a_o stint_n and_o render_v that_o whereunto_o of_o right_a they_o be_v oblige_v have_v not_o superaboundant_a passion_n or_o work_n of_o supererogation_n jesuit_fw-la this_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o at_o the_o petition_n of_o constant_a confessor_n in_o prison_n do_v release_v the_o penalty_n that_o sinner_n be_v enjoin_v to_o perform_v to_o satisfy_v none_o only_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n but_o also_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n after_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n still_o continue_v unto_o the_o infliction_n of_o temporal_a pain_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n cyprian_n and_o that_o this_o relaxation_n of_o temporal_a 15._o pain_n be_v do_v by_o apply_v the_o abundant_a satisfaction_n of_o holy_a confessor_n and_o design_v martyr_n unto_o the_o poenitent_o that_o receive_v indulgence_n at_o their_o intercession_n appear_v by_o tertullian_n for_o he_o fall_v from_o the_o church_n into_o the_o error_n of_o montanus_n whereof_o one_o be_v that_o for_o christian_n sin_v after_o baptism_n there_o be_v no_o remission_n of_o sin_n refute_v the_o catholic_a custom_n of_o remit_v penalty_n unto_o sinner_n for_o the_o merit_n of_o martyr_n speak_v thus_o let_v it_o suffice_v the_o martyr_n that_o they_o have_v 22._o cancel_v and_o satisfy_v their_o own_o sin_n it_o be_v ingratitude_n or_o pride_n for_o one_o prodigal_o to_o cast_v abroad_o upon_o other_o that_o which_o as_o a_o great_a benefit_n be_v bestow_v upon_o he_o and_o speak_v unto_o the_o martyr_n say_v if_o thou_o be_v a_o sinner_n how_o can_v the_o oil_n of_o thy_o lamp_n suffice_v both_o for_o thou_o and_o i_o by_o which_o haereticall_a impugnation_n appear_v that_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n than_o be_v that_o man_n may_v satisfy_v one_o for_o another_o and_o that_o the_o abundant_a satisfaction_n of_o some_o that_o suffer_v exceed_o as_o martyr_n be_v apply_v for_o the_o redemption_n of_o some_o other_o more_o remiss_a and_o negligent_a not_o from_o eternal_a but_o only_o temporal_a punishment_n answer_n you_o be_v a_o unfaithful_a relatour_n of_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n which_o be_v as_o follow_v after_o foul_a and_o enormous_a know_v offence_n commit_v by_o christian_n and_o especial_o after_o deny_v the_o faith_n or_o sacrifice_v to_o idol_n offender_n be_v put_v to_o a_o grievous_a and_o long_a penance_n etc._n it_o fall_v out_o sometime_o that_o there_o be_v just_a reason_n why_o the_o rigour_n of_o penance_n shall_v be_v mitigate_v either_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o kind_n of_o duresse_n impose_v or_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o length_n and_o continuance_n which_o favour_n the_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n of_o each_o church_n not_o the_o roman_a only_o have_v authority_n by_o the_o canon_n to_o grant_v as_o they_o see_v just_a cause_n 11._o this_o mitigation_n and_o relaxation_n of_o penance_n be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o pardon_n and_o indulgence_n dicebatur_fw-la and_o in_o the_o same_o there_o be_v no_o buy_v or_o sell_v no_o reference_n to_o purgatory_n second_o whereas_o you_o pretend_v that_o pope_n pardon_n be_v in_o use_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n many_o of_o your_o own_o part_n control_v your_o impudency_n to_o wit_n durand_n loquuntur_fw-la antonine_n modernorum_fw-la maior_n sunt_fw-la roffensis_n usus_fw-la angelus_n 18._o de_fw-fr clavasio_n cassander_n indulg_n and_o 〈◊〉_d indulgentiarum_fw-la deny_v that_o the_o church_n have_v any_o treasury_n 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o saint_n the_o 〈◊〉_d be_v maintain_v by_o angelus_n de_fw-fr clavasio_n
in_o his_o body_n by_o concomitancie_n for_o then_o it_o be_v accidental_o therein_o but_o as_o a_o part_n in_o the_o whole_a for_o as_o the_o bone_n sinew_n and_o vein_n be_v integrall_a part_n of_o anaturall_a humane_a body_n so_o likewise_o be_v the_o blood_n corporis_fw-la and_o natural_a part_n be_v in_o the_o whole_a by_o substantial_a union_n not_o by_o concomitancie_n for_o than_o they_o be_v in_o the_o body_n or_o belong_v thereunto_o as_o a_o adjunct_n to_o his_o subject_n if_o we_o consider_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n take_v for_o the_o more_o solid_a part_n thereof_o as_o it_o be_v represent_v and_o exhibit_v in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o wit_n as_o it_o be_v fix_v to_o the_o cross_n and_o divide_v from_o the_o blood_n then_o according_a to_o this_o sacramental_a representation_n and_o exhibition_n the_o same_o alone_a neither_o contain_v nor_o represent_v the_o blood_n 1._o the_o sacred_a eucharist_n be_v one_o entire_a sacrament_n sacramentum_fw-la totum_fw-la compositum_fw-la have_v two_o external_a element_n to_o wit_n bread_n and_o wine_n and_o these_o two_o sign_n or_o element_n represent_v the_o material_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n upon_o the_o cross_n mentio_fw-la which_o consist_v at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o oblation_n thereof_o of_o a_o body_n fix_v on_o a_o tree_n and_o the_o same_o die_a by_o effusion_n of_o blood_n luk._n 22.21_o and_o in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n christ_n be_v as_o it_o be_v crucify_v before_o our_o eye_n and_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n by_o representation_n be_v divide_v and_o god_n almighty_a use_v these_o mystical_a creature_n as_o instrument_n to_o communicate_v unto_o every_o worthy_a receiver_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o christ_n his_o son_n 1._o cor._n 10.16_o but_o as_o the_o sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n be_v not_o perform_v in_o one_o of_o these_o individual_n apart_o or_o by_o itself_o but_o joint_o in_o they_o both_o and_o without_o effusion_n of_o blood_n there_o be_v no_o remission_n of_o sin_n est_fw-la heb._n 9.22_o so_o likewise_o in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v represent_v as_o it_o be_v divide_v from_o the_o blood_n and_o again_o the_o blood_n as_o sever_v from_o the_o body_n and_o god_n concur_v with_o both_o the_o element_n deliver_v and_o receive_v with_o the_o one_o as_o it_o be_v by_o inception_n and_o with_o the_o other_o by_o consummation_n and_o communicant_n partake_v not_o the_o whole_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n until_o they_o have_v receive_v both_o the_o material_a part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n here_o then_o be_v no_o popish_a concomitancie_n either_o of_o the_o blood_n to_o the_o body_n when_o it_o be_v receive_v apart_o or_o of_o the_o body_n to_o the_o blood_n when_o that_o be_v receive_v alone_o but_o the_o sacrament_n reach_v the_o body_n &_o blood_n as_o they_o be_v divide_v and_o they_o be_v then_o conjoin_v to_o make_v one_o sacrifice_n when_o they_o be_v both_o deliver_v and_o receive_v the_o whole_a can_v be_v in_o one_o part_n neither_o do_v one_o part_n concomitate_fw-la another_o but_o be_v substantial_o unite_v to_o another_o and_o in_o a_o sacrifice_n or_o sacrament_n compound_v of_o divisible_a part_n he_o which_o give_v or_o receive_v one_o material_a part_n do_v not_o therein_o or_o thereby_o distribute_v or_o receive_v the_o whole_a neither_o again_o be_v the_o deity_n unite_v to_o the_o body_n or_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o concomitancie_n but_o by_o personal_a union_n thus_o than_o i_o argue_v whatsoever_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o sacrament_n by_o we_o be_v before_o offer_v to_o god_n upon_o the_o crosse._n but_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n have_v blood_n in_o it_o by_o concomitance_n or_o the_o deity_n in_o it_o by_o concomitancie_n or_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n have_v in_o it_o the_o body_n or_o 〈◊〉_d by_o concomitancie_n be_v not_o offer_v to_o god_n upon_o the_o cross_n for_o before_o the_o effusion_n of_o the_o blood_n the_o same_o be_v in_o the_o body_n as_o a_o part_n not_o by_o concomitancie_n after_o the_o full_a effusion_n the_o blood_n be_v divide_v from_o the_o body_n and_o the_o 〈◊〉_d be_v with_o the_o body_n by_o personal_a union_n and_o not_o by_o concomitancie_n ergo_fw-la at_o this_o day_n the_o body_n and_o deity_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n by_o concomitancie_n etc._n etc._n jesuit_fw-la first_o he_o that_o acknowledge_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n sacred_a body_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o deny_v concomitancie_n do_v in_o his_o belief_n separate_v the_o blood_n and_o soul_n of_o christ_n from_o his_o body_n but_o to_o separate_v either_o christ_n divinity_n from_o his_o humanity_n or_o soul_n from_o his_o body_n or_o his_o blood_n from_o his_o flesh_n be_v unlawful_a for_o such_o a_o believer_n do_v dissolve_v and_o destroy_v christ_n jesus_n and_o so_o be_v one_o of_o the_o number_n of_o they_o that_o s_o john_n condemn_v omnis_fw-la 4.3_o spiritus_fw-la qui_fw-la soluit_fw-la jesum_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la ex_fw-la deo_fw-la &_o hic_fw-la est_fw-la antichristus_fw-la answer_n the_o sum_n of_o this_o objection_n be_v whosoever_o dissolve_v christ_n jesus_n be_v a_o antichrist_n every_o one_o who_o admit_v real_a presence_n and_o yet_o deny_v concomitancie_n dissolve_v christ_n jesus_n for_o he_o separate_v the_o blood_n and_o soul_n of_o christ_n from_o his_o body_n and_o his_o divinity_n from_o his_o humanity_n ergo_fw-la whosoever_o in_o the_o real_a presence_n deny_v concomitancie_n be_v a_o antichrist_n our_o answer_n be_v whosoever_o dissolve_v christ_n jesus_n according_a to_o s._n johns_n meaning_n 1._o joh._n 4.3_o by_o deny_v his_o deity_n humanity_n or_o personal_a union_n etc._n be_v antichrist_n but_o the_o deny_v of_o popish_a concomitancie_n infer_v none_o of_o these_o for_o although_o we_o affirm_v that_o in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n be_v represent_v distinct_o and_o as_o they_o be_v divide_v at_o his_o passion_n yet_o this_o dissolve_v not_o jesus_n but_o signify_v the_o separation_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n former_o make_v upon_o the_o cross_n consecuti_fw-la and_o we_o believe_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n according_a to_o the_o distinct_a signification_n potuit_fw-la of_o the_o sacramental_a element_n reach_v in_o a_o spiritual_a manner_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n crucify_v to_o all_o faithful_a communicant_n and_o add_v a_o several_a effect_n and_o virtue_n of_o spiritual_a refection_n to_o each_o distinct_a part_n receive_v 〈◊〉_d according_a to_o the_o signification_n and_o this_o be_v confess_v by_o vasques_n ruard_v tapper_n alexander_n halles_n jesuit_fw-la and_o this_o argument_n have_v great_a force_n in_o their_o opinion_n who_o shall_v think_v that_o christ_n leave_v heaven_n for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v down_o real_o according_a to_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o how_o can_v the_o bodic_n of_o christ_n come_v down_o from_o heaven_n without_o blood_n and_o soul_n unless_o he_o come_v down_o dead_a and_o so_o christ_n shall_v be_v not_o only_o mystical_o and_o figurative_o but_o true_o and_o real_o massacre_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o bloody_a sacrifice_n and_o not_o incruent_a as_o the_o father_n term_n it_o answer_n none_o of_o our_o part_n think_v that_o christ_n leave_v heaven_n to_o come_v down_o real_o according_a to_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n act._n 3.21_o donec_fw-la seculum_fw-la finiatur_fw-la 〈◊〉_d est_fw-la dominus_fw-la augustine_n in_o joh._n tract_n 7._o until_o the_o world_n be_v finish_v the_o lord_n continue_v above_o and_o the_o father_n term_n the_o holy_a eucharist_n a_o unbloudie_a sacrifice_n not_o because_o christ_n be_v proper_o and_o in_o his_o substance_n offer_v therein_o but_o because_o his_o bloody_a sacrifice_n upon_o the_o cross_n be_v by_o this_o unbloudie_a commemoration_n represent_v call_v to_o remembrance_n and_o apply_v read_v the_o sentence_n of_o father_n obtulit_fw-la place_v in_o the_o margin_n read_v also_o peter_n lombard_n semel_fw-la and_o the_o enchiridion_n of_o colen_n semel_fw-la jesuit_fw-la second_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v glorious_a in_o heaven_n or_o rather_o christ_n be_v glorious_a in_o heaven_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o priest_n sai_z this_o be_v my_o body_n but_o a_o body_n devoid_a of_o blood_n without_o soul_n and_o consequent_o dead_a and_o senseless_a be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o he_o be_v now_o glorious_a in_o heaven_n which_o have_v blood_n in_o the_o vein_n and_o be_v inform_v and_o glorify_v by_o a_o most_o excellent_a soul_n therefore_o christ_n glorious_a in_o heaven_n can_v say_v true_o that_o a_o body_n void_a of_o blood_n sense_n and_o soul_n be_v his_o body_n but_o soul_n life_n and_o blood_n must_v needs_o follow_v and_o concomitate_fw-la his_o body_n wheresoever_o it_o be_v answer_n first_o the_o new_a testament_n acknowledge_v no_o proper_a sacrifice_a priest_n but_o christ_n jesus_n only_o